minister_n you_o cypher_n 1._o tim._n 6.12_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n lay_v hold_v on_o eternal_a life_n whereunto_o thou_o be_v call_v ibid._n lin_v 3._o to_o prove_v âhe_v scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o spiritual_a man_n you_o âypher_n 1._o cor._n 2.15_o but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o which_o prove_v the_o contrary_n if_o it_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o judge_v and_o rule_v by_o scripture_n but_o raâher_o the_o scripture_n be_v judge_v and_o rule_v by_o he_o pag._n â0_n lin_v 21._o to_o prove_v that_o we_o wrong_v you_o in_o saying_n âou_fw-mi derogate_v from_o the_o church_n you_o cite_v matth._n 18._o â7_n he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a &_o publican_n ibid._n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n you_o cypher_n heb._n ââ_o 17_o obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o submit_v yourself_o unto_o they_o âag_n 169._o lin_v 22._o to_o prove_v that_o no_o church_n ever_o priââd_v the_o oblation_n &_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n more_o ââghly_a and_o religious_o than_o you_o do_v you_o cypher_n heb._n â_o 14_o with_o one_o oblation_n he_o do_v consummate_v for_o ever_o the_o sanctified_a and_o ephes._n 5.2_o he_o give_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n ãâã_d we_o to_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n &_o john_n 1.29_o behold_v the_o âambe_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n &_o âct_n 4.12_o there_o be_v not_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o name_n pag._n â1_n lin_v 1._o to_o prove_v we_o wrong_v you_o by_o say_v you_o aââint_v that_o 126._o that_o the_o word_n of_o john_n white_a way_n pag._n 126._o every_o particular_a man_n examine_v &_o ââdge_v of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o teach_n you_o cite_v 1._o cor._n â_o 19_o be_v all_o apostle_n be_v all_o prophet_n be_v all_o teacher_n âre_n all_o worker_n of_o miracle_n if_o one_o will_v study_v to_o apâây_a scripture_n impertinent_o i_o be_o persuade_v he_o can_v âârdly_o devise_v great_a impertinencye_n than_o these_o âhich_v be_v so_o riâe_v in_o every_o page_n of_o your_o book_n so_o that_o it_o be_v intolerable_a folly_n for_o your_o poet_n and_o paynter_n to_o represent_v this_o your_o voluminous_a cypher_v of_o scripture_n with_o a_o crown_n upon_o it_o bid_v man_n to_o behâââ_n grace_n and_o wisdom_n in_o your_o look_n and_o truth_n triumphâââ_n your_o book_n for_o if_o this_o kind_n of_o cypher_v of_o scripture_n be_v wisdom_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o last_o extreme_a anâ_n nonplus_n of_o folly_n of_o i_o wonder_v you_o will_v not_o be_v warn_v to_o be_v more_o wise_a by_o the_o book_n of_o quaeres_fw-la or_o prurit-anus_a for_o you_o cite_v the_o scripture_n as_o impertinent_o in_o good_a earnest_n as_o he_o do_v in_o jest_n to_o show_v your_o ministerial_a folly_n folly_n you_o cite_v &_o cypher_n scripture_n that_o make_v against_o you_o §._o 8._o hereunto_o i_o add_v that_o the_o text_n you_o cypher_n many_o time_n make_v against_o you_o pag._n 548._o lin_v 19_o to_o prove_v that_o reward_n be_v give_v unto_o work_n of_o graââ_n and_o bounty_n aswell_o as_o of_o desert_n you_o cypher_n rom._n 4_o 4._o which_o say_v to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o reckon_v of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n can_v any_o text_n be_v devise_v more_o direct_o against_o the_o purpose_n you_o cite_v it_o for_o by_o this_o place_n join_v with_o a_o sentence_n of_o you_o i_o conclude_v unanswerable_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o merit_n the_o reward_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o work_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o his_o work_n be_v give_v not_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n but_o eternal_a life_n be_v term_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n because_o it_o be_v bestow_v ãâã_d they_o which_o exercise_n righteousness_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o thâ_n righteousness_n the_o true_a inherent_a dignity_n sanctity_n and_o purity_n of_o their_o work_n ergo_fw-la eternal_a life_n be_v a_o reward_n oâ_n good_a work_v give_v to_o god_n child_n of_o debt_n not_o ãâã_d mere_a grace_n and_o bounty_n the_o mayor_n be_v s._n paul_n by_o you_o cypher_v in_o this_o place_n the_o minor_a your_o ow_v in_o so_o many_o word_n pag._n 174._o in_o fine_a and_o 1â9_n so_o thââ_n the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o you_o cite_v prove_v invinciâbly_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n against_o which_o you_o cite_v iâ_n pag._n 558._o lin_v 4._o to_o prove_v that_o live_a saint_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o saint_n defunct_a by_o partake_v the_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n you_o cyte_v rom._n 12._o v._n 4._o we_o have_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n and_o every_o member_n have_v âot_n the_o same_o office_n this_o text_n prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o âhat_n you_o intend_v to_o wit_n that_o satisfaction_n be_v communicable_a betwixt_o saint_n for_o from_o this_o text_n i_o argue_v thus_o if_o saint_n live_v &_o saint_n decease_v be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n have_v different_a office_n than_o âhere_o must_v be_v betwixt_o they_o communion_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o superabound_v in_o some_o member_n and_o be_v neeâed_v of_o other_o for_o this_o we_o see_v to_o be_v that_o fellowship_n which_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o nature_n the_o member_n of_o âhe_n same_o body_n ought_v to_o enjoy_v the_o one_o with_o the_o oâher_n but_o the_o myrrh_n of_o mortification_n and_o satisfaction_n superabound_v in_o many_o most_o rare_a innocent_a and_o penitent_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o be_v no_o less_o need_v of_o diverse_a other_o saint_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v do_v many_o sin_n and_o can_v do_v such_o great_a penance_n therefore_o the_o myrrh_n of_o superabounding_a penance_n and_o satisfaction_n aught_o to_o flow_v down_o from_o decease_a saint_n in_o heaven_n unto_o their_o fellow-member_n the_o needy_a saint_n that_o live_v on_o earth_n the_o jesuite_n 523._o jesuite_n see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 523._o say_v that_o the_o first_o precept_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n etc._n etc._n bind_v not_o man_n to_o love_n god_n in_o this_o life_n with_o beatifical_a love_n nor_o to_o be_v always_o in_o actual_a employment_n of_o his_o love_n on_o he_o but_o only_o to_o love_v sincere_o and_o inward_o to_o the_o keep_n of_o all_o commandment_n without_o any_o mortal_a offence_n which_o break_v friendship_n with_o god_n desire_v though_o not_o enjoy_v the_o happiness_n of_o beatifical_a love_n this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o s._n bernard_n and_o s._n augustine_n when_o they_o say_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o next_o life_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o precept_n to_o wit_n in_o voto_fw-la not_o in_o re_fw-mi this_o doctrine_n you_o impugn_v pag._n 525._o lin_v 26._o saying_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v observe_v other_o commandment_n break_v the_o first_o commandment_n and_o do_v undergo_v corporal_a pain_n after_o the_o breach_n thereof_o how_o prove_v you_o this_o marry_o you_o cypher_n heb._n 11.31_o they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v sawen_v a_o sunder_o they_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n do_v this_o text_n prove_v the_o saint_n transgress_v the_o first_o commandment_n that_o they_o be_v corporal_o afflict_v for_o their_o not_o love_v god_n with_o all_o their_o hart_n do_v it_o not_o rather_o show_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o love_v god_n perfect_o and_o be_v temporal_o torment_v because_o they_o so_o love_v he_o with_o all_o their_o hart_n that_o they_o will_v rather_o undergo_v most_o cruel_a and_o barbarous_a death_n then_o offend_v he_o or_o abandon_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o charity_n pag._n 10._o lin_v 20._o you_o deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n and_o definition_n yet_o say_v you_o we_o acknowledge_v her_o lawful_a authority_n for_o expound_v scripture_n and_o maintain_v unity_n in_o right_a faith_n in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o cite_v matth._n 18.17_o who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n you_o can_v not_o have_v invent_v a_o text_n that_o do_v more_o invincible_o show_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o you_o intend_v let_v we_o make_v this_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o mayor_n and_o your_o protestant_a doctrine_n the_o minor_a and_o put_v your_o argument_n in_o form_n then_o will_v you_o see_v how_o handsome_o you_o prove_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n say_v the_o church_n be_v of_o so_o great_a &_o absolute_a &_o infallible_a authority_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o hear_v she_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n protestant_n say_v the_o church_n be_v so_o subject_a to_o
the_o creed_n and_o prime_a principle_n of_o christianity_n in_o plain_a and_o catechisticall_a manner_n beside_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o keep_v her_o child_n from_o believe_v that_o image_n be_v god_n or_o true_a live_a thing_n or_o that_o any_o divinity_n or_o divine_a virtue_n reside_v in_o they_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v convince_o in_o my_o judgement_n by_o experience_n have_v of_o her_o power_n in_o this_o kind_n about_o a_o point_n more_o difficile_a for_o what_o may_v seem_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v bread_n of_o which_o four_o sense_n sight_n feeling_n smell_v taste_n give_v in_o evidence_n as_o of_o bread_n no_o less_o very_o they_o any_o other_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v discern_v and_o yet_o so_o potent_a be_v the_o word_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o general_a counsel_n declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o catholic_n deny_v their_o sense_n believe_v assure_o that_o what_o seem_v bread_n be_v not_o bread_n but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o form_n of_o accident_n of_o bread_n now_o can_v any_o man_n with_o any_o show_n of_o the_o least_o probability_n in_o the_o world_n think_v that_o it_o be_v difficile_a for_o this_o church_n to_o persuade_v her_o child_n that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o live_a thing_n nor_o have_v any_o godhead_n or_o live_v divine_a power_n lodge_v in_o it_o as_o plain_a scripture_n show_v and_o general_n catholic_a counsel_n particular_o the_o tridentine_n sess_v 25._o and_o the_o nicene_n act_n 7._o define_v which_o doctrine_n neither_o reason_n nor_o sense_n can_v mislike_v or_o shall_v the_o sole_a similitude_n of_o member_n correspondent_a unto_o humane_a live_a member_n which_o image_n have_v so_o much_o prevail_v in_o catholic_a mind_n so_o to_o bow_v down_o their_o thought_n to_o base_a idolatry_n as_o to_o think_v a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n to_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a by_o her_o teach_n to_o direct_v they_o to_o a_o more_o high_a &_o divine_a apprehension_n be_v able_a to_o make_v they_o firm_o believe_v a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v not_o bread_n against_o the_o judgement_n that_o they_o will_v otherwise_o frame_v upon_o most_o notorious_a evidency_n of_o sense_n the_o protestant_n church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o great_a vigour_n by_o preach_v to_o persuade_v common_a people_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o anthropomorphits_n see_v their_o principle_n be_v that_o a_o world_n of_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o evident_a scripture_n yea_o 4._o yea_o here_o the_o minister_n be_v bitter_a saying_n p._n 277._o lin_v 30._o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o that_o his_o brother_n m._n john_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o every_o private_a man_n nor_o any_o company_n of_o people_n but_o that_o one_o michaia_n one_o stephen_n one_o athanasius_n with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n in_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v against_o 4._o hundred_o baalite_n i_o answer_v the_o minister_n deny_v his_o brother_n speak_v of_o every_o particular_a man_n shall_v receive_v his_o doom_n by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o brother_n own_o mouth_n tell_v he_o the_o contrary_a who_o thus_o write_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n to_o wit_n way_n pag._n 126._o lin_v 12._o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n to_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n reject_v the_o teach_n of_o a_o church_n as_o great_a and_o good_a as_o the_o roman_a catholic_a his_o judgement_n therein_o be_v not_o private_a as_o private_a be_v oppose_v to_o spiritval_n nor_o say_v he_o pag._n 128._o lin_v 2._o be_v it_o impossible_a for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o espy_v a_o error_n in_o the_o best_a church_n that_o be_v and_o pa._n 150._o lin_v 18._o whereas_o the_o catholics_n answer_n that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n try_v the_o spirit_n do_v not_o allow_v every_o man_n to_o do_v this_o but_o only_a pastor_n the_o minister_n repli_v this_o be_v all_o false_a for_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v indifferent_o of_o all_o man_n every_o man_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o try_v spirit_n that_o epistle_n be_v direct_v not_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o to_o the_o people_z and_o the_o reason_n add_v show_v that_o the_o people_z be_v they_o that_o must_v try_v spirit_n for_o they_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a prophet_n and_o such_o be_v the_o people_z and_o therefore_o they_o must_v examine_v they_o all_o these_o be_v his_o brother_n johns_n word_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v whether_o john_n white_a do_v not_o hold_v that_o not_o only_o extraordinary_a prophet_n as_o michaeas_n &_o stephen_n not_o only_o chief_a patriarch_n as_o athanasius_n but_o that_o every_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o people_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o condemn_v as_o great_a a_o church_n as_o the_o protestant_n if_o by_o his_o spiritual_a exposition_n or_o by_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v what_o reason_n then_o have_v our_o minister_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o allegation_n to_o be_v so_o bitter_a as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a âor_a papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o very_o m._n francis_n have_v you_o as_o much_o natural_a understanding_n together_o with_o knowledge_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o have_v your_o brother_n john_n you_o will_v see_v this_o doctrine_n that_o every_o private_a man_n be_v by_o divine_a order_n and_o institution_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o church_n how_o absurd_a soever_o to_o be_v necessary_o consequent_a of_o the_o protestant_a principle_n that_o every_o man_n must_v final_o resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n yea_o i_o can_v show_v how_o yourself_o even_o in_o this_o reply_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n of_o judge_v the_o church_n unto_o every_o private_a man_n as_o may_v partly_o appear_v by_o the_o censure_n sect_n 4._o that_o a_o common_a ordinary_a man_n by_o scripture_n may_v oppose_v as_o great_a and_o great_a church_n then_o be_v the_o whole_a protestant_n doctor_n white_a in_o his_o way_n pag._n 59_o which_o principle_n be_v lay_v how_o will_v they_o convince_v people_n that_o god_n be_v a_o pure_a spirit_n who_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o perpetual_o set_v forth_o as_o have_v humane_a member_n i_o may_v conclude_v therefore_o that_o their_o translate_n scripture_n into_o their_o vulgar_a language_n breed_v more_o danger_n unto_o common_a people_n than_o our_o make_n of_o image_n but_o they_o will_v say_v the_o translation_n of_o scripture_n into_o vulgar_a language_n be_v command_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostolical_a church_n practise_v it_o whereas_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v warrant_n or_o practice_v the_o set_n up_o of_o image_n this_o they_o say_v with_o great_a confidence_n but_o any_o substantial_a proof_n of_o this_o their_o say_n i_o can_v never_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o testimony_n they_o bring_v in_o this_o behalf_n search_v the_o scripture_n let_v his_o word_n dwell_v plentiful_o among_o you_o etc._n etc._n be_v insufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o direct_a and_o express_v precept_n or_o practice_n of_o translate_n scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n catholic_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n though_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o scripture_n as_o know_v that_o nothing_o be_v so_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o it_o but_o malapert_a error_n may_v contend_v against_o it_o with_o some_o show_n of_o probability_n yet_o have_v scripture_n much_o more_o clear_a and_o express_v then_o any_o that_o protestant_n can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o even_o about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v in_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n s._n paul_n to_o the_o galatian_n c._n 3._o v._n 1._o say_v o_o you_o foolish_a galathian_o who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n before_o who_o eye_n christ_n jesus_n be_v lively_o set_v forth_o crucify_a among_o you_o the_o greek_a word_n correspond_v to_o the_o english_a lively_o set_v forth_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o paint_v forth_o a_o thing_n in_o so_o much_o as_o even_o beza_n translate_v jesus_n christus_fw-la depictus_fw-la câucifixus_n jesus_n christ_n paint_v or_o picture_v crucify_v before_o your_o eye_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n that_o christ_n be_v picture_v as_o crucify_a in_o the_o apostolical_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v
standart_n of_o the_o cross_n i_o will_v fly_v from_o the_o same_o as_o from_o the_o devil_n for_o this_o emperor_n still_o carry_v euseb._n l._n 2._o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constant_n c._n 3·_n &_o 4._o salutaris_n passionis_fw-la christi_fw-la insigne_fw-la universum_fw-la exercitum_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la antecedebat_fw-la the_o standart_n of_o the_o cross_n before_o his_o army_n in_o all_o his_o battle_n against_o maxentius_n maximinus_n &_o licinius_n put_v therein_o assure_v confidence_n of_o victory_n unto_o who_o god_n give_v miraculous_a success_n and_o he_o a_o example_n unto_o christian_a succeed_v monarch_n to_o prostrate_v the_o imperial_a purple_n before_o the_o say_v sacred_a ensign_n to_o adore_v thereby_o christ_n their_o god_n wherein_o a_o chief_a saint_n of_o that_o age_n rejoice_v sing_v this_o verse_n prudent_a lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la symmach_n jam_fw-la purpura_fw-la supplex_fw-la sternitur_fw-la aeneadae_n rectoris_fw-la ad_fw-la atria_fw-la christi_fw-la vexillunque_fw-la crucis_fw-la summus_fw-la moderator_n adorat_fw-la imperial_a purple_a now_o christ_n aid_n implore_v the_o soveraygne_a lord_n prostrate_v his_o cross_n adore_v theodosius_n to_o who_o likewise_o heroical_a worthiness_n have_v give_v the_o title_n of_o great_a no_o doubt_n but_o his_o so_o many_o great_a victory_n special_o against_o eugenius_n the_o pagan_a usurp_a emperor_n be_v win_v by_o his_o devotion_n unto_o saint_n who_o church_n before_o he_o go_v to_o that_o warlike_a expedition_n he_o do_v visit_v ruffian_n lib._n 2._o histor._n c._n 33._o lie_v prostrate_a before_o their_o shrine_n crave_v the_o assure_a aid_n of_o their_o powerful_a intercession_n in_o the_o enterprise_n have_v in_o the_o first_o battle_n lose_v the_o day_n by_o the_o slaughter_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o army_n that_o be_v infidel_n full_a of_o perplexity_n he_o spend_v the_o night_n in_o prayer_n in_o a_o chapel_n on_o the_o top_n of_o a_o mountain_n theodor._n lib._n 5._o c._n 24._o vidit_fw-la dvos_fw-la viros_fw-la candido_fw-la vestitu_fw-la equis_fw-la albis_fw-la vehi_fw-la and_o there_o have_v watch_v a_o long_a while_n fall_v asleep_a in_o his_o sleep_n two_o man_n appear_v unto_o he_o in_o white_a attire_n mount_v on_o white_a horse_n bid_v he_o not_o to_o fear_v but_o the_o next_o morning_n present_o upon_o break_v of_o day_n to_o offer_v again_o the_o battle_n se_fw-la auxiliares_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o antesignanos_n à _fw-la deo_fw-la missos_fw-la that_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o protector_n and_o leader_n of_o his_o army_n &_o that_o the_o one_o be_v john_n the_o evangelist_n the_o other_o philip_n the_o apostle_n the_o emperor_n upon_o this_o warrant_n the_o next_o day_n give_v again_o the_o field_n to_o his_o enemy_n and_o signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la se_fw-la muniens_fw-la signum_fw-la praelio_fw-la dedit_fw-la oros._n l._n 7._o c._n 37._o make_v upon_o himself_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n begin_v the_o fight_n get_v a_o most_o memorable_a victory_n through_o the_o divine_a assistance_n for_o theodor._n ruffin_n oros._n &_o omnes_fw-la histor_n when_o the_o enemy_n through_o their_o multitude_n begin_v to_o prevail_v a_o storm_n sudden_o blow_v from_o the_o mountain_n drive_v their_o dart_n &_o lance_n back_o upon_o themselves_o wherewith_o amaze_v without_o further_a fight_v they_o yield_v yea_o lay_v hand_n on_o eugenius_n they_o bring_v he_o unto_o theodosius_n captive_a &_o bind_v in_o chain_n the_o miracle_n of_o which_o victory_n a_o pagan_a poet_n who_o then_o live_v acknowledge_v say_v thereof_o panegyr_n in_o 3._o honor._n aquilo_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr procellis_fw-la obruit_fw-la armatas_fw-la acies_fw-la revolutáque_fw-la tela_n vertit_fw-la in_o auctores_fw-la &_o turbine_fw-la reppulit_fw-la hastas_fw-la o_o nimiùm_fw-la dilecte_fw-la deo_fw-la cvi_fw-la militat_fw-la aether_n et_fw-la coniurati_fw-la veniunt_fw-la ad_fw-la classica_fw-la venti_fw-la a_o wind_n the_o army_n fell_v with_o northern_a blast_n and_o lance_n and_o dart_v back_o on_o their_o author_n cast_v o_o love_v of_o god_n for_o who_o the_o heaven_n do_v fight_v and_o wind_n at_o call_n employ_v command_v might_n honorius_n son_n of_o the_o foresaid_a theodosius_n obtain_v two_o wonderful_a victory_n to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o one_o in_o africa_n with_o a_o army_n of_o only_a five_o thousand_o sigon_n de_fw-fr accident_n imper_v lib._n 10._o pag._n 160._o against_o the_o army_n of_o gildo_n the_o pagan_a tyrant_n consist_v of_o seaventy_n thousand_o the_o other_o in_o italy_n against_o radagaysus_n the_o goth_n bring_v with_o he_o a_o army_n of_o more_o than_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o be_v defeat_v and_o whole_o extinguish_v not_o one_o christian_a soldier_n be_v august_n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 23._o so_o much_o as_o wound_v and_o this_o by_o paulin._n nolan_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it felice_n nat._n 12._o the_o virtue_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n unto_o saint_n for_o paulin._n in_o vita_fw-la ambrosij_n saint_n ambrose_n decease_v some_o few_o year_n before_o appear_v unto_o the_o general_n assure_v he_o of_o the_o victory_n and_o teach_v he_o oros._n l._n 7._o cap._n 36._o where_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o shall_v order_v his_o army_n thereby_o confirm_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n set_v down_o by_o s._n augustine_n as_o undoubted_a august_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la cap._n 15._o sancti_fw-la per_fw-la divinam_fw-la potentian_n humanis_fw-la rebus_fw-la intersunt_fw-la saint_n not_o by_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n have_v care_n of_o human_a affair_n theodoricke_n the_o goth_n though_o in_o opinion_n a_o arian_n yet_o by_o special_a divine_a instinct_n nicephor_n l._n 16._o c._n 35._o a_o great_a favourer_n and_o honourer_n of_o the_o roman_a act._n synod_n rom._n sub_fw-la symmach_n religion_n and_o sea_n by_o many_o famous_a victory_n conquer_v in_o short_a time_n the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o italy_n the_o which_o he_o many_o year_n peaceable_o enjoy_v sigon_n de_fw-fr occident_n imper_v lib._n 16._o until_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n deflect_v from_o his_o former_a piety_n to_o be_v a_o persecutor_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n &_o faith_n he_o conclude_v his_o long_a happy_a reign_n with_o a_o dismal_a and_o unfortunate_a death_n justinian_n emperor_n fill_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n with_o the_o trophy_n of_o his_o conquest_n which_o he_o do_v ever_o novel_a 36._o &_o 37._o vide_fw-la baron_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 533._o &_o 534._o acknowledge_v as_o benefit_n bestow_v on_o he_o for_o his_o singular_a devotion_n unto_o the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n who_o glorious_a title_n of_o god_n mother_n he_o maintain_v against_o the_o nestorian_n by_o many_o edict_n procop._n de_fw-fr aedific_n justin_n orat_fw-la 4._o raise_v in_o jerusalem_n carthage_n and_o other_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o world_n sumptuous_a and_o magnificent_a temple_n in_o her_o honour_n yea_o narses_n his_o general_n by_o who_o he_o expel_v the_o goth_n out_o of_o italy_n be_v so_o euagr._fw-la l._n 4._o cap._n 23._o devout_a to_o our_o lady_n that_o be_v to_o give_v the_o battle_n unto_o his_o enemy_n his_o wont_n be_v to_o spend_v the_o whole_a night_n before_o in_o prayer_n &_o in_o invocation_n of_o her_o aid_n whereby_o he_o obtain_v so_o great_a favour_n as_o he_o be_v still_o nicephor_n l._n 17._o c._n 13._o teach_v and_o instruct_v by_o she_o appear_v unto_o he_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o be_v to_o manage_v the_o field_n who_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o the_o renown_a victory_n which_o heraclius_n the_o emperor_n win_v upon_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n with_o small_a force_n against_o three_o mighty_a army_n rather_o by_o divine_a miracle_n then_o by_o human_a strength_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n whereby_o god_n confirm_v rusticus_n diaconus_fw-la contra_fw-la eutich_n the_o catholic_a devotion_n then_o use_v without_o contradiction_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la hist._n miscel._n l._n 1._o &_o cedrenus_n de_fw-fr imper._n in_o heracl_n to_o worship_v that_o most_o holy_a wood_n &_o holy_a image_n the_o say_a emperor_n cause_v the_o image_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n to_o be_v carry_v in_o all_o his_o battle_n before_o his_o army_n clodoveus_fw-la the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o france_n surname_v belliger_fw-la what_o be_v his_o so_o many_o victory_n but_o trophy_n of_o the_o now_o dislike_v roman_a devotion_n when_o gregor_n turon_n who_o do_v live_v about_o that_o time_n l_o 2._o histor_n c._n 17._o hincmar_n in_o vita_fw-la sancti_fw-la remigij_fw-la aimân_n &_o alij_fw-la he_o go_v in_o expedition_n against_o alaricus_n the_o arian_n who_o have_v usurp_v gascoigne_n &_o other_o part_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n kingdom_n to_o prepare_v the_o way_n unto_o the_o victory_n he_o offer_v gift_n and_o donaryes_n unto_o s._n martin_n in_o honour_n of_o who_o he_o also_o command_v none_o shall_v touch_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o country_n of_o tours_n but_o only_a water_n and_o grass_n
hispan_n l._n 8._o c._n 10._o marian._n de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi hisp._n l._n 11._o c._n 14_o 15._o mahometan_n in_o a_o battle_n with_o alphonsus_n king_n of_o castille_n surname_v the_o noble_a have_v the_o better_a of_o the_o day_n the_o christian_a army_n be_v almost_o put_v to_o flight_n the_o archdeacon_n of_o toledo_n full_a of_o christian_a courage_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o ensign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o he_o carry_v before_o his_o archbishop_n wherein_o also_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n go_v therewith_o through_o the_o thick_a of_o the_o enemy_n without_o be_v hurt_n though_o innumerable_a lance_n &_o dart_n be_v cast_v and_o arrow_n shoot_v at_o he_o by_o his_o example_n the_o christian_a army_n encourage_v return_v with_o new_a fortitude_n to_o the_o battayne_n put_v the_o saracen_n to_o flight_n make_v massacre_n of_o they_o who_o be_v so_o many_o as_o the_o lance_n dart_n &_o arrow_n leave_v behind_o they_o in_o the_o field_n can_v not_o be_v consume_v with_o the_o many_o mighty_a fire_n make_v two_o day_n together_o aswell_o in_o token_n of_o joy_n as_o for_o other_o use_n more_o ancient_a &_o no_o less_o wonderful_a be_v the_o victory_n get_v against_o the_o same_o infidel_n by_o raymirus_n king_n of_o leon_n and_o galicia_n he_o ambros._n moral_a &_o all_o other_o historian_n have_v gather_v together_o all_o the_o force_n of_o his_o kingdom_n against_o these_o mahometan_a usurper_n be_v defeat_v be_v bring_v to_o great_a distress_n &_o sadness_n as_o he_o rest_v in_o the_o night_n s._n james_n appear_v unto_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o christ_n have_v peculiar_o commit_v spain_n to_o his_o tuition_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o fear_v but_o trust_v in_o god_n the_o next_o day_n present_v the_o field_n to_o the_o infidel_n for_o himself_o will_v be_v in_o the_o fight_n the_o king_n do_v as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n ordain_v who_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n be_v see_v in_o the_o field_n upon_o a_o white_a horse_n with_o a_o red_a cross_n on_o his_o breast_n run_v upon_o the_o mahometan_n and_o put_v they_o to_o flight_n unto_o vide_fw-la diploma_fw-la regis_fw-la apud_fw-la joan._n marian._n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr s._n jacobi_fw-la in_o hispaniam_fw-la adventu_fw-la in_o fine_a which_o victory_n not_o only_o the_o king_n in_o his_o charter_n with_o many_o bishop_n &_o noble_n of_o his_o realm_n as_o eye-witness_n give_v record_v but_o even_o the_o mahometan_a history_n make_v mention_v thereof_o if_o i_o add_v unto_o these_o foreign_a history_n our_o domestical_a victory_n i_o shall_v be_v over_o long_o yet_o can_v i_o pretermit_v to_o touch_v one_o example_n in_o every_o line_n and_o nation_n of_o our_o king_n among_o the_o britan_n none_o more_o famous_a than_o prince_n arthur_n nor_o be_v any_o of_o his_o victory_n more_o certain_a than_o that_o record_v by_o beda_n lib._n 1._o c._n 20._o histor_n henricus_fw-la hântâng_n rânulph_n venerable_a bede_n though_o without_o mention_n of_o he_o the_o pict_n and_o saxon_n associate_a their_o force_n and_o invade_v the_o britan_n with_o a_o most_o dreadful_a army_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o britan_n holy_a s._n german_n bishop_n be_v prince_n of_o the_o choir_n by_o sing_v alleluia_n &_o other_o church-prayer_n strike_v such_o a_o dismal_a fright_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o infidel_n that_o abandon_v their_o weapon_n and_o armour_n they_o run_v away_o with_o all_o possible_a haste_n the_o miracle_n of_o josue_n josue_n c._n 6._o his_o victory_n be_v renew_v when_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a trumpet_n whereby_o also_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v authorize_v that_o church-prayer_n in_o a_o language_n not_o vulgar_o understand_v may_v be_v please_v and_o effectual_a with_o god_n in_o the_o line_n of_o our_o saxon_a king_n who_o for_o the_o fight_n of_o many_o battle_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o renown_a victory_n more_o admire_v than_o king_n alfrede_n which_o asser._n meneu_fw-fr in_o vita_fw-la alured_n polidor_n l_o â_o guââel_n malme_n &_o alij_fw-la victory_n so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a he_o win_v by_o his_o devotion_n unto_o saint_n particular_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o saint_n cuthbert_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o king_n encourage_v he_o unto_o that_o famous_a battle_n whereby_o the_o force_n of_o the_o usurp_a infidel_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o extinguish_v after_o the_o conquest_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o conqueror_n himself_o who_o vast_a and_o valiant_a enterprise_n be_v make_v fortunate_a by_o a_o consecrate_a standart_n ingulph_n matt._n westmon_n &_o alij_fw-la send_v he_o by_o pope_n alexander_n the_o second_o i_o will_v only_o name_v king_n henry_n the_o five_o the_o mirror_n of_o king_n in_o who_o be_v sum_v together_o the_o whole_a perfection_n of_o all_o catholic_a military_n and_o politic_a worthiness_n on_o the_o one_o side_n who_o more_o renown_a for_o victory_n they_o this_o conqueror_n of_o france_n which_o in_o the_o space_n of_o few_o year_n he_o bring_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o under_o his_o obedience_n on_o the_o other_o who_o more_o memorable_a for_o his_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a sea_n for_o his_o reverence_n of_o catholic_a priesthood_n for_o his_o care_n and_o respect_n of_o church_n for_o his_o zeal_n against_o the_o wickliffian_n heresy_n for_o his_o daily_a devout_a invocation_n of_o saint_n for_o his_o go_v barefoot_a in_o pilgrimage_n unto_o church_n titus_n livius_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la henrici_fw-la thomas_n walse_v enguerant_fw-la stow_z and_o other_o two_o monasterye_n he_o build_v from_o the_o foundation_n opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o upon_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o thames_n that_o term_v bethleem_n for_o religious_a man_n this_o zion_n for_o consecrate_a virgin_n which_o shall_v day_n and_o night_n without_o intermission_n pray_v for_o the_o happy_a success_n of_o his_o war_n in_o france_n he_o nicol._n harpesfield_n hist._n eccles._n anglic._n saecul_fw-la 15._o cap._n 3._o spend_v and_o command_v his_o army_n to_o spend_v the_o night_n before_o the_o famous_a battle_n of_o agincourt_n in_o prayer_n in_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o make_v their_o confession_n unto_o priest_n in_o do_v penance_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o morning_n before_o the_o battle_n every_o one_o by_o his_o order_n put_v a_o piece_n of_o earth_n to_o his_o mouth_n to_o testify_v his_o desire_n have_v there_o be_v opportunity_n to_o have_v receive_v the_o sacred_a communion_n in_o one_o kind_n as_o both_o the_o token_n do_v signify_v and_o then_o be_v the_o practice_n so_o that_o the_o divine_a providence_n grant_v so_o glorious_a a_o victory_n unto_o so_o few_o against_o walsingham_n write_v the_o french_a be_v a_o hundred_o &_o forty_o thousand_o the_o english_a not_o above_o ten_o thousand_o so_o many_o make_v as_o it_o be_v proclamation_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o these_o now_o question_v roman_a devotion_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o hectoâ_n boethius_n histor_n scot._n fol._n 196._o bucan_n histor._n scot._n fol._n 48._o annal_n of_o scotland_n we_o read_v that_o guthran_n king_n of_o the_o dane_n in_o baptism_n term_v athelstan_n have_v subdue_v a_o good_a part_n of_o england_n invade_v scotland_n his_o army_n be_v so_o puissant_a as_o therewith_o he_o environ_v hungus_n king_n of_o the_o pict_n and_o alpinius_n prince_n of_o scotland_n with_o their_o force_n that_o come_v against_o he_o denounce_v unto_o they_o by_o one_o that_o have_v a_o loud_a and_o shrill_a voice_n that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v escape_v alive_a the_o king_n hungus_n after_o long_a prayer_n unto_o god_n and_o s._n andrew_n be_v asleep_a the_o say_a apostle_n appear_v unto_o he_o bid_v he_o fight_v the_o next_o day_n with_o confidence_n in_o god_n &_o his_o aid_n the_o battle_n be_v fight_v crux_fw-la decussata_fw-la saint_n andrew_n cross_n appear_v over_o the_o scottish_a army_n the_o field_n win_v against_o the_o dane_n athelstan_n slay_v therein_o s._n andrew_n confirm_v patron_n of_o scotland_n his_o cross_n make_v their_o ensign_n a_o famous_a church_n build_v in_o his_o honour_n to_o the_o use_n whereof_o and_o mantaynance_n of_o canon_n therein_o the_o king_n apply_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o deciman_n regiorum_fw-la praediorum_fw-la partem_fw-la his_o royal_a patrimony_n the_o great_a battle_n that_o scottishman_n ever_o win_v without_o doubt_n be_v that_o of_o strivel_a against_o our_o edward_n the_o second_o the_o scottish_a history_n say_v this_o king_n army_n do_v consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o thousand_o horse_n and_o of_o as_o many_o foot_n and_o though_o this_o may_v seem_v great_a exaggeration_n yet_o our_o thomas_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr more_n in_o vita_fw-la edwardi_fw-la 2._o numquam_fw-la magis_fw-la splendidus_fw-la nobilis_fw-la &_o superbus_fw-la anglorum_fw-la exercitus_fw-la visus_fw-la stow_z anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1313._o pag._n 333._o english_a annal_n testify_v that_o never_o
he_o be_v so_o silent_a in_o print_n about_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o conference_n only_o do_v his_o endeavour_n to_o disgrace_v the_o jesuit_n in_o general_a term_n say_v that_o he_o vanish_v away_o from_o before_o his_o majesty_n with_o foil_n and_o disgrace_n his_o majesty_n tell_v he_o he_o never_o hear_v a_o very_a mean_v a_o fool_n or_o ass_n etc._n etc._n a_o report_n so_o false_a as_o the_o minister_n contradict_v the_o same_o himself_o elsewhere_o write_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o his_o preface_n towards_o the_o end_n and_o reply_v to_o the_o jesuit_n preface_n initio_fw-la that_o by_o the_o second_o conference_n his_o majesty_n observe_v that_o the_o adversary_n be_v cunning_a and_o subtle_a in_o elude_a argument_n for_o what_o more_o opposite_a to_o the_o very_a ass_n or_o fool_n than_o one_o cunning_a and_o subtle_a if_o his_o majesty_n observe_v by_o that_o conference_n that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v cunning_a subtle_a acute_a in_o answer_v how_o can_v he_o say_v of_o he_o i_o never_o hear_v a_o very_a ass_n thus_o man_n implicate_v themselves_o that_o speak_v what_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v without_o care_n of_o truth_n but_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o relation_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o there_o be_v extant_a a_o apology_n for_o the_o same_o in_o print_n now_o concern_v the_o answer_n itself_o to_o the_o nine_o point_n m._n fisher_n have_v receive_v the_o note_n present_o address_v himself_o to_o comply_v with_o his_o majesties_n command_n be_v encourage_v thereunto_o by_o the_o title_n show_v his_o majesties_n desire_n of_o join_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v he_o be_v satisfy_v about_o some_o point_n and_o as_o he_o employ_v therein_o his_o great_a strength_n so_o likewise_o he_o be_v careful_a to_o use_v the_o expedition_n that_o be_v require_v achieve_v the_o work_n in_o less_o than_o a_o month_n though_o the_o same_o be_v not_o so_o soon_o deliver_v into_o his_o majesties_n hand_n this_o expedition_n be_v likewise_o the_o cause_n that_o he_o do_v omit_v the_o discussion_n of_o the_o nine_o point_v about_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o depose_v king_n for_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o command_n of_o his_o general_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a order_n not_o to_o publish_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o argument_n without_o send_v the_o same_o first_o to_o rome_n to_o be_v review_v and_o approve_v his_o answer_n to_o that_o point_v can_v not_o have_v be_v perform_v without_o very_o long_a expectation_n &_o delay_n and_o he_o be_v the_o more_o bold_a to_o pretermit_v that_o controversy_n in_o regard_n that_o sundry_a whole_a treatise_n about_o the_o same_o write_v by_o jesuit_n and_o other_o both_o secular_a &_o religion_n have_v be_v late_o print_v these_o author_n so_o fresh_a and_o new_a he_o be_v sure_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o his_o majesty_n nor_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v also_o know_v that_o common_o king_n be_v not_o so_o willing_a to_o hear_v the_o proof_n of_o coercive_v authority_n over_o they_o be_v the_o same_o never_o so_o certain_a he_o judge_v by_o this_o omission_n the_o rest_n of_o his_o treatise_n may_v be_v more_o grateful_a and_o find_v in_o his_o majesties_n breast_n less_o disaffection_n &_o resistance_n against_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o nor_o can_v he_o think_v that_o his_o judicious_a majesty_n be_v persuade_v of_o the_o other_o eight_o point_n will_v have_v be_v stay_v from_o join_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o nine_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n over_o king_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n in_o such_o case_n be_v far_o more_o disgraceful_a &_o dangerous_a and_o this_o forbearance_n be_v not_o reply_v pag._n 571._o as_o the_o minister_n object_n against_o the_o resolution_n of_o a_o constant_a divine_a or_o s._n bernard_n rule_n melius_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la scandalum_fw-la oriatur_fw-la quà m_fw-la ut_fw-la veritas_fw-la relinquatur_fw-la it_o be_v indeed_o better_a that_o scandal_n arise_v then_o divine_a verity_n be_v forsake_v by_o the_o denial_n thereof_o or_o by_o not_o profess_v our_o conscience_n therein_o reply_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n preface_n initio_fw-la when_o we_o be_v iuridical_o examine_v by_o the_o magistrate_n wherein_o even_o the_o minister_n give_v testimony_n that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v not_o defective_a but_o do_v full_o and_o clear_o declare_v his_o faith_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n his_o majesty_n tell_v he_o he_o like_v he_o the_o better_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o playnesse_n this_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o man_n of_o learning_n &_o discretion_n but_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o a_o constant_a divine_a may_v put_v off_o the_o scholastic_a tractation_n of_o some_o point_v of_o faith_n that_o be_v less_o please_a until_o the_o auditor_n by_o be_v persuade_v of_o article_n that_o do_v less_o distaste_n be_v make_v more_o capable_a of_o the_o truth_n towards_o which_o by_o disaffection_n they_o be_v not_o so_o prone_a the_o other_o article_n be_v large_o discuss_v and_o as_o exact_o as_o shortness_n of_o time_n join_v with_o penury_n of_o book_n will_v permit_v they_o be_v according_a to_o the_o note_n but_o eight_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o contain_v diverse_a branch_n and_o so_o all_o together_o they_o amount_v to_o the_o number_n of_o fourteen_o to_o wit_n 1._o the_o worship_n of_o image_n 2._o the_o worship_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n &_o relic_n 3._o that_o saint_n &_o angel_n hear_v our_o prayer_n 4._o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o honour_n superhumane_a or_o more_o than_o civil_a 5._o that_o we_o may_v &_o aught_o to_o invocate_v they_o 6._o that_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n be_v pious_a 7._o the_o liturgy_n lawful_a in_o a_o language_n not_o vulgar_o know_v 8._o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n unto_o the_o corporal_a mouth_n 9_o transubstantiation_n 10._o merit_n 11._o work_n of_o supererogation_n 12._o the_o remaynder_n of_o temporal_a pain_n after_o the_o guilt_n of_o sinne._n 13._o that_o holy_a man_n by_o divine_a grace_n may_v for_o the_o same_o make_v compensant_fw-la yea_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n 14._o that_o superabundant_a satiâfactions_n may_v be_v apply_v unto_o other_o by_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n before_o these_o be_v prefix_v the_o fundamental_a controversy_n of_o the_o church_n that_o man_n can_v be_v resolve_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n but_o by_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n about_o the_o sufficiency_n &_o perspicuity_n of_o the_o scripture_n about_o the_o church_n âisible_a unity_n universality_n holiness_n succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n who_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v so_o that_o in_o this_o treatise_n a_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o chief_a controversy_n of_o this_o age_n be_v contain_v concern_v the_o manner_n of_o handle_v these_o point_n the_o minister_n grant_v the_o jesuite_n show_v himself_o well_o verse_v in_o controversy_n add_v in_o his_o preface_n he_o be_v deficient_a of_o divine_a proof_n in_o every_o article_n and_o far_o more_o specious_a including_z our_o argument_n then_o happy_a in_o confirm_v his_o own_o what_o reason_n he_o may_v have_v to_o give_v this_o censure_n of_o the_o treatise_n i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o only_o that_o he_o will_v say_v something_o against_o it_o and_o no_o better_a exception_n occur_v otherwise_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o in_o every_o article_n the_o answerer_n urge_v not_o only_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n but_o also_o sundry_a text_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o which_o be_v the_o minister_n trick_n score_v book_n chapter_n verse_n without_o so_o much_o as_o cite_v the_o word_n nor_o only_o do_v he_o produce_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n but_o also_o refute_v the_o protestant_a answer_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o interpretation_n themselves_o commend_v by_o recourse_n unto_o the_o original_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o text_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a by_o the_o drift_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o discourse_n by_o conference_n of_o other_o place_n special_o by_o the_o express_a letter_n and_o proper_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n he_o show_v that_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n interpret_v from_o within_o itself_o as_o unto_o the_o supreme_a judge_n in_o very_a truth_n appeal_v from_o the_o express_a sentence_n of_o divine_a scripture_n unto_o the_o figurative_a construction_n of_o their_o humane_a conceit_n for_o in_o every_o point_n of_o these_o controversye_n they_o be_v prove_v to_o leave_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n without_o evident_a warrant_n from_o the_o say_a scripture_n so_o to_o do_v upon_o argument_n at_o the_o most_o probable_a
to_o meet_v knock_n will_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o be_v want_v among_o they_o i_o need_v not_o seek_v far_o for_o the_o like_a example_n of_o your_o vanity_n the_o very_a next_o page_n after_o your_o picture_n be_v sufficient_o store_v with_o such_o kind_n of_o stuff_n two_o woman_n there_o stand_v opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o that_o of_o the_o right_a side_n for_o your_o gospel_n that_o on_o the_o left_a for_o the_o roman_a religion_n between_o who_o you_o have_v picture_v four_o or_o five_o opposition_n which_o deserve_v to_o be_v note_v be_v wise_a one_o in_o which_o shine_v your_o skill_n in_o mystical_a or_o symbolical_a theology_n the_o first_o opposition_n your_o protestant_a woman_n have_v a_o sun_n of_o glory_n about_o her_o head_n to_o signify_v that_o she_o be_v 18._o be_v in_o sole_fw-la posuit_fw-la tabernaculum_fw-la suum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_o manifestatione_n posuit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o oculto_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la lateat_fw-la quid_fw-la heretice_fw-la fugis_fw-la ad_fw-la tenebras_fw-la quid_fw-la latitare_fw-la conaris_fw-la august_n in_o psal._n 18._o seat_v in_o the_o sun_n ever_o in_o manifest_a sight_n ever_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n so_o perpetual_o visible_a that_o for_o more_o than_o 12._o hundred_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n unto_o luther_n she_o be_v never_o see_v in_o the_o world_n as_o 168._o as_o napier_n upon_o revelat._n pag._n 168._o your_o doctor_n confess_v and_o the_o motto_n you_o have_v set_v under_o she_o do_v insinuate_v veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la time_n discover_v truth_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o same_o be_v hide_v until_o these_o late_a day_n of_o luther_n but_o see_v the_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n whereby_o your_o luther_n be_v illumine_v happen_v at_o midnight_n as_o etc._n as_o vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la media_fw-la nocte_fw-la expergefactus_fw-la sum_fw-la qua_fw-la mecum_fw-la diabolus_fw-la disputationem_fw-la orsus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n himself_o do_v testify_v i_o think_v not_o veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la but_z nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indicat_fw-la scientiam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o verbal_a sound_n will_v have_v be_v the_o fit_a motto_n for_o your_o gospel_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o roman_a religion_n poor_a woman_n be_v by_o you_o paint_v stark_o blind_a with_o this_o vnderscription_n error_n caecus_fw-la perchance_o you_o think_v she_o must_v needs_o be_v blind_a in_o respect_n of_o her_o old_a age_n have_v live_v in_o open_a profession_n to_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o may_v suspect_v to_o be_v your_o reason_n do_v i_o not_o see_v that_o you_o attribute_v the_o same_o papistical_a blindness_n even_o to_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a church_n luther_n affirm_v 434._o affirm_v luther_n tom._n â_o wittemb_n lib._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitr_n p._n 434._o that_o the_o father_n of_o so_o many_o age_n be_v stark_o blind_a another_o protestant_n of_o great_a name_n do_v profess_v 43._o profess_v caelius_n secundus_fw-la curio_n de_fw-fr amplitud_n reg._n christi_fw-la l._n 1._o pag._n 43._o that_o the_o whole_a world_n ever_o almost_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n until_o this_o last_o age_n live_v in_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n your_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n doubt_v not_o to_o pronounce_v 473._o pronounce_v whitegift_n defence_n pag._n 472_o &_o 473._o how_o great_o spot_v be_v almost_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o of_o the_o latin_a also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n merit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a that_o never_o since_o the_o apostle_n be_v there_o a_o church_n so_o pure_a and_o perfect_a as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v at_o this_o day_n wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v angry_a with_o your_o paint_v our_o religion_n stark_o blind_a see_v she_o can_v not_o be_v the_o christian_a religion_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o since_o christ_n be_v she_o not_o blind_a in_o the_o foolish_a imagination_n of_o your_o fantastical_a gospel_n the_o second_o opposition_n mistress_n protestancy_n be_v paint_v with_o her_o breast_n open_a her_o pap_n display_v naked_a down_o to_o the_o girdle_n you_o will_v say_v this_o do_v represent_v the_o naked_a simplicity_n and_o candour_n of_o truth_n which_o your_o religion_n love_v no_o doubt_n that_o simple_a truth_n be_v find_v in_o she_o which_o hold_v man_n may_v lawful_o lie_v in_o behalf_n of_o her_o mentiri_fw-la her_o osiander_n epitome_n histor_n centur_fw-la 16._o pag_n 79â_n hanâ_n regulam_fw-la habent_fw-la caluinistae_fw-la lâcere_fw-la pro_fw-la gloria_fw-la christi_fw-la mentiri_fw-la gospel_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o lie_v enough_o in_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n may_v not_o i_o say_v more_o ââuly_o that_o this_o more_o fit_o represent_v that_o the_o immodest_a fashion_n of_o woman_n to_o go_v with_o their_o breast_n naked_a as_o now_o be_v the_o use_n be_v by_o your_o gospel_n bring_v into_o england_n a_o fashion_n so_o odious_a in_o catholic_a time_n as_o even_o strumpet_n dare_v not_o use_v it_o in_o public_a hence_o some_o may_v suspect_v this_o levity_n &_o lightness_n character_v by_o her_o attire_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o her_o great_a belly_n wherewith_o you_o seem_v to_o set_v she_o forth_o whereby_o also_o you_o may_v signify_v that_o she_o be_v the_o offspring_n not_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o vigilantius_n his_o gospel_n which_o be_v so_o religious_a &_o devote_a unto_o carnal_a fecundity_n that_o as_o do_v testify_v 1._o testify_v nisi_fw-la pregnantes_fw-la viderint_fw-la vxores_fw-la clericorum_fw-la infantesque_fw-la de_fw-la ulnis_fw-la matrum_fw-la vagientes_fw-la christi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la non_fw-la tribuunt_fw-la hieron_n lib._n advers._n vigil_n cap._n 1._o s._n hierome_n her_o bishop_n will_v not_o order_v any_o minister_n except_o first_o they_o see_v their_o wife_n either_o to_o have_v great_a belly_n or_o young_a babe_n hang_v at_o their_o breast_n though_o perchance_o your_o meaning_n be_v by_o this_o emblem_n to_o express_v the_o blessing_n of_o fecundity_n which_o your_o gospel_n enjoy_v in_o your_o worship_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o yearly_o fill_v the_o parish_n of_o the_o realm_n with_o many_o novel_a branch_n of_o your_o leviticall_a stock_n on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o have_v do_v a_o deed_n of_o charity_n towards_o the_o roman_a woman_n in_o clothe_v she_o with_o modest_a attire_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n the_o foot_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v bare_a to_o signify_v perchance_o that_o she_o be_v a_o barefooted_a nun_n or_o a_o great_a practicant_n of_o go_v barefoot_a in_o pilgrimage_n and_o of_o such_o penitential_a work_n and_o whereas_o you_o make_v the_o garment_n of_o our_o church_n speackââd_v with_o great_a variety_n of_o incise_v work_n this_o do_v not_o displease_v we_o whatsoever_o your_o meaning_n may_v be_v for_o this_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o emblem_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n use_v by_o the_o royal_a prophet_n psal_n 44._o where_o she_o be_v describe_v a_o queen_n stand_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o the_o fair_a among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 44.15_o man_n psal._n 44.15_o circumamicta_fw-la varietatibus_fw-la clothe_v about_o with_o variety_n which_o variety_n wrought_v on_o her_o garment_n may_v signify_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o holy_a heroical_a work_n practise_v by_o her_o child_n whereby_o she_o 59.6_o she_o lex_fw-la domini_fw-la immaculata_fw-la convertens_fw-la animas_fw-la psal._n 18.8_o isa._n 59.6_o convert_v so_o great_a variety_n of_o nation_n from_o paganism_n unto_o christ._n fron_n the_o attire_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o work_n your_o religion_n be_v as_o naked_a &_o innocent_a as_o the_o child_n new_o bear_v that_o of_o your_o endeavour_n in_o this_o behalf_n we_o may_v pronounce_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n inutilia_fw-la prophet_n telae_fw-la eorum_fw-la non_fw-la erunt_fw-la in_o vestiman_n unâ_n opera_fw-la eorum_fw-la opera_fw-la inutilia_fw-la the_o web_n they_o weave_v will_v not_o serve_v for_o clothing_n their_o work_n be_v unprofitable_a work_n for_o your_o doctrine_n have_v no_o force_n to_o convert_v infidel_n unto_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o pervert_v &_o draw_v 16._o draw_v indocti_fw-la &_o instabiles_fw-la depravant_fw-la scripturas_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la sunt_fw-la difficilia_fw-la intellectu_fw-la 2._o pet._n 3_o 16._o unstable_a christian_n from_o his_o church_n the_o three_o opposition_n the_o woman_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v paint_v with_o a_o royal_a crown_n in_o her_o right_a hand_n hold_v the_o same_o towards_o her_o breast_n to_o show_v her_o affection_n unto_o king_n who_o she_o hug_v in_o her_o arm_n as_o the_o ape_n do_v his_o young_a one_o till_o she_o press_v they_o to_o death_n by_o extremity_n of_o love_n this_o happen_v unto_o his_o majesties_n etc._n majesties_n camden_n elizab._n p._n 458._o hunc_fw-la lamentabilem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la finem_fw-la habuit_fw-la maria_fw-la scotorum_fw-la regina_fw-la
your_o disgrace_n can_v not_o have_v wish_v you_o shall_v commit_v grosser_n fault_n this_o i_o shall_v make_v clear_a by_o three_o example_n whereof_o each_o involu_v many_o argument_n not_o only_o of_o your_o ignorance_n but_o also_o of_o your_o boldness_n in_o talk_v about_o thing_n of_o which_o you_o be_v total_o ignorant_a the_o first_o example_n §._o 1._o the_o 116._o the_o reply_n pag._n 116._o jesuit_n to_o prove_v against_o protestant_n argumento_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n argue_v in_o this_o sort_n that_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolic_a church_n the_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o roman_a ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a church_n to_o this_o argument_n you_o reply_v pag._n 116._o this_o syllogism_n be_v peccant_a in_o form_n and_o both_o the_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a in_o the_o second_o figure_n which_o i_o note_v the_o rather_o because_o the_o adversary_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o argument_n cry_v victoria_fw-la say_v a_o argument_n convince_a and_o unanswerable_a i_o must_v therefore_o reduce_v the_o same_o to_o a_o lawful_a form_n and_o then_o answer_v thus_o you_o now_o vouchsafe_v to_o take_v a_o view_n of_o your_o manifold_a ignorance_n i_o pretermit_v your_o falsehood_n in_o charge_v the_o jesuit_n of_o say_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v convictive_a &_o unanswerable_a for_o the_o jesuite_n do_v not_o so_o affirm_v of_o this_o argument_n but_o of_o another_o to_o wit_n of_o this_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o church_n can_v deliver_v by_o full_a and_o unanimous_a consent_n a_o false_a sense_n than_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o in_o like_a manner_n she_o may_v deliver_v a_o false_a text_n but_o protestant_n can_v say_v that_o the_o church_n by_o full_a and_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o tradition_n can_v deliver_v a_o false_a text_n ergo_fw-la they_o may_v not_o say_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o ãâã_d church_n shall_v deliver_v by_o full_a &_o unanimous_a consent_n a_o false_a sense_n this_o argument_n the_o jesuit_n term_v ãâã_d answerable_a not_o the_o other_o which_o you_o challenge_v â_o peccant_a in_o form_n but_o this_o your_o falsehood_n i_o pretermit_v and_o only_o prosecute_v your_o fault_n in_o logic_n theââ_n be_v four_o and_o so_o gross_a as_o they_o show_v clear_o that_o yoâ_n never_o learn_v or_o else_o have_v utter_o forget_v the_o surââmula's_n or_o rudiment_n of_o this_o art_n which_o childreâ_n customary_o be_v teach_v the_o first_o fault_n be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o ãâã_d second_o &_o three_o figure_n which_o be_v as_o childish_a in_o lââgike_a as_o in_o grammar_n not_o to_o know_v the_o three_o decleââsion_n from_o the_o second_o you_o say_v the_o jesuit_n argumeââ_n be_v in_o the_o second_o figure_n and_o therefore_o peccant_a in_o formââ_n both_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a whereas_o iâ_n truth_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o three_o figure_n in_o which_o it_o lawful_a to_o argue_v both_o proposition_n be_v affirmatiââ_n the_o three_o figure_n be_v wherein_o the_o medium_fw-la or_o meanâ_n of_o proof_n be_v subject_v in_o both_o proposition_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n whereof_o another_o term_n be_v predicate_v thââ_n be_v be_v affirm_v or_o deny_v in_o the_o jesuite_n argument_n ãâã_d medium_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o holy_a cathoâlike_a church_n be_v the_o church_n from_o which_o protestaââ_n receive_v scripture_n this_o church_n from_o which_o prââtestants_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v predicate_v in_o neââther_n of_o his_o proposition_n but_o in_o both_o be_v subject_v thââ_n be_v be_v the_o term_n whereof_o another_o thing_n be_v affirm_v ãâã_d say_v in_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n of_o the_o church_n ãâã_d give_v protestant_n the_o scripture_n one_o holy_a catholics_n apostolic_a be_v affirm_v the_o church_n from_o whicâ_n protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a apostolic_a church_n in_o the_o minor_a likewise_o of_o the_o ãâã_d church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v scripture_n the_o roman_a be_v predicate_v the_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o roman_n hence_o in_o lawful_a form_n in_o the_o three_o figure_n follow_v this_o conclusion_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a church_n your_o second_o fault_n be_v grosser_n than_o the_o first_o for_o you_o know_v not_o the_o quality_n of_o proposition_n nor_o can_v discern_v a_o negative_a from_o a_o affirmative_a which_o be_v as_o great_a simplicity_n in_o logic_n yea_o great_a than_o in_o grammar_n not_o to_o know_v the_o termination_n of_o the_o second_o declension_n from_o the_o first_o you_o say_v in_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n both_o proposition_n be_v pure_a affirmative_a whereas_o his_o minor_n be_v in_o part_n negative_a to_o wit_n protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a who_o feel_v not_o this_o proposition_n to_o be_v partly_o negative_a wherein_o be_v deny_v that_o any_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a be_v that_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n can_v pretend_v the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n authentical_o or_o by_o assure_a perpetual_a tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n for_o exceptive_a and_o exclusive_a enuntiation_n be_v compound_a enuntiation_n partly_o affirmative_a partly_o negative_a and_o as_o logician_n teach_v the_o exponibiles_fw-la the_o enuntiationes_fw-la exponibiles_fw-la exposition_n of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v into_o two_o single_a proposition_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v negative_a the_o other_o affirmative_a so_o the_o jesuites_n proposition_n protestant_n receive_v scripture_n by_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a be_v exceptive_a be_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o a_o negative_a no_o church_n not_o roman_n be_v the_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v scripture_n and_o also_o by_o a_o affirmative_a the_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v scripture_n be_v the_o roman_n hence_o the_o jesuit_n as_o he_o do_v conclude_v in_o a_o form_n of_o the_o three_o figure_n call_v disamis_n his_o minor_a be_v partly_o affirmative_a so_o may_v he_o have_v conclude_v in_o a_o form_n of_o the_o second_o term_v camestres_n the_o same_o minor_a be_v also_o negative_a in_o this_o manner_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n be_v that_o from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n no_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a be_v that_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la no_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a apostolic_a church_n your_o three_o fault_n be_v not_o to_o know_v the_o form_n of_o expository_n syllogism_n from_o the_o common_a a_o expository_n syllogism_n be_v that_o wherein_o the_o mean_n of_o proof_n be_v a_o singular_a and_o individual_a thing_n in_o which_o kind_n it_o be_v good_a form_n to_o argue_v affirmative_o in_o any_o figure_n even_o in_o the_o second_o for_o example_n this_o sillogisme_n the_o minister_n gross_o ignorant_a in_o logic_n reply_v against_o m._n fisher._n the_o dean_n of_o carlisle_n be_v he_o who_o reply_v against_o m._n fisher._n ergo_fw-la the_o dean_n of_o carliele_n be_v the_o minister_n gross_o ignorant_a of_o logic_n this_o sillogisme_n be_v in_o the_o second_o figure_n and_o both_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a yet_o if_o you_o deny_v the_o form_n of_o argue_v to_o be_v good_a you_o will_v but_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o conclusion_n hence_o the_o jesuit_n may_v in_o good_a form_n have_v argue_v affirmative_o in_o the_o second_o figure_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolical_a church_n be_v that_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o have_v the_o scripture_n authentical_o the_o roman_a be_v that_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o have_v the_o scripture_n authentical_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n your_o four_o fault_n be_v that_o you_o play_v the_o reformer_n of_o argument_n as_o luther_n do_v of_o church_n that_o be_v you_o reject_v lawful_a and_o good_a form_n and_o in_o lieu_n of_o they_o bring_v in_o vicious_a and_o damnable_a the_o jesuit_n argument_n as_o by_o you_o 117._o you_o reply_v pag._n 117._o reform_v be_v this_o the_o church_n from_o which_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o roman_a ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n in_o this_o reform_a argument_n both_o proposition_n be_v particular_a and_o consequent_o the_o form_n of_o argue_v vicious_a in_o any_o figure_n as_o every_o logician_n know_v the_o jesuit_n to_o prevent_v this_o fault_n make_v his_o minor_a a_o universal_a proposition_n for_o this_o proposition_n protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n
inference_n in_o a_o matter_n where_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o you_o can_v bring_v most_o invincible_a proof_n a_o controversy_n there_o be_v between_o you_o and_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a inviolable_a ordinance_n that_o all_o lay_v man_n read_v scripture_n so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o translate_v scripture_n into_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n &_o not_o to_o take_v translation_n from_o such_o person_n as_o abuse_v they_o or_o use_v they_o to_o their_o perdition_n in_o which_o question_n we_o say_v you_o 278._o you_o reply_v pag._n 278._o affirm_v with_o great_a confidence_n that_o the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o lay_v people_n which_o must_v needs_o imply_v translation_n of_o they_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o because_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o hear_v nor_o read_v in_o protestant_n substantial_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n the_o common_o urge_a text_n search_v the_o scripture_n be_v insufficient_a you_o say_v that_o you_o not_o only_o urge_v the_o text_n john_n 3.39_o which_o the_o jesuit_n think_v he_o can_v elude_v by_o subtle_a distinction_n as_o the_o arrian_n elude_v the_o text_n of_o s._n john_n 10.30_o that_o be_v solide_o answer_v as_o father_n as_o caluin_n in_o caput_fw-la 10._o joan_n circa_fw-la vers_fw-la â0_n say_v the_o ancient_a father_n abuse_v this_o text_n i_o &_o my_o father_n be_v one_o to_o prove_v christ_n not_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o of_o unity_n of_o consent_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n caluin_n aver_v but_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o you_o lay_v together_o on_o a_o heap_n in_o this_o 378._o this_o reply_v pag._n 378._o sort_n the_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n act._n 8.28_o the_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o holy_a scripture_n act._n 17.11_o he_o be_v call_v bless_v that_o read_v and_o hear_v apocalip_n 1.3_o the_o galatian_n read_v the_o scripture_n gal._n 4.22_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 3.4_o the_o colossian_n c._n 4.16_o the_o thessalonian_o 1._o thes._n 5.27_o the_o father_n be_v so_o plentiful_a in_o this_o argument_n as_o i_o have_v 42._o have_v defence_n of_o my_o brother_n pag._n 42._o elsewhere_o show_v that_o it_o will_v astonish_v any_o man_n who_o have_v read_v they_o to_o behold_v such_o impudence_n in_o papist_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o practice_n to_o have_v be_v primitive_a and_o catholic_a but_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v suffer_v to_o speak_v papistry_n must_v fall_v like_o dagon_n before_o the_o arkâ_n thus_o you_o give_v we_o great_a cause_n to_o commiserate_v your_o blindness_n that_o dispute_v so_o ignorant_o you_o shall_v conclude_v so_o arrogant_o you_o have_v in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o quote_v 42._o quote_v orthodox_n pag._n 42._o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o heresy_n bring_v many_o testimony_n of_o father_n to_o prove_v what_o no_o man_n deny_v to_o wit_n these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v pious_a and_o godly_a to_o read_v scripture_n with_o devotion_n with_o humility_n with_o submission_n of_o judgement_n unto_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o common_a exposition_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n second_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o read_v by_o lay_v people_n be_v common_a &_o frequent_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o time_n that_o the_o learned_a language_n be_v vulgar_o know_v in_o which_o tongue_n the_o church_n neither_o now_o do_v nor_o ever_o do_v prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n unto_o any_o person_n these_o two_o thing_n we_o approve_v so_o that_o you_o be_v unaduised_a might_n i_o not_o say_v impudent_a in_o your_o affirm_v that_o the_o papist_n impudent_o deny_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n no_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n with_o due_a humility_n to_o be_v pious_a or_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n but_o only_o two_o proud_a noveltye_n bring_v in_o by_o your_o religion_n first_o that_o it_o 126._o it_o the_o very_a word_n of_o your_o brother_n john_n in_o his_o way_n pag._n 126._o be_v lawful_a yea_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o judge_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o private_a man_n by_o scripture_n reject_v and_o condemn_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o great_a and_o best_a church_n that_o be_v his_o judgement_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o private_a but_o as_o spiritvall_n and_o the_o public_a censure_n of_o the_o spirit_n second_o that_o all_o even_o layman_n by_o divine_a pretext_n and_o ordinance_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n &_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n this_o your_o doctrine_n this_o your_o practice_n we_o dislike_v as_o dangerous_a as_o impious_a as_o the_o fountain_n of_o discord_n of_o heresy_n and_o of_o manifold_a most_o damnable_a error_n a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v it_o every_o where_o establish_v not_o dagon_n before_o the_o ark_n but_o christianity_n will_v fall_v before_o and_o yield_v unto_o the_o devil_n as_o some_o of_o your_o side_n teach_v by_o lamentable_a experience_n acknowledge_v and_o complain_v this_o opinion_n say_v they_o 119._o they_o hooker_n ecclesiast_fw-la policy_n pag._n 119._o be_v once_o insert_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o vulgar_a what_o it_o may_v grow_v unto_o god_n only_o know_v thus_o much_o we_o see_v it_o have_v already_o make_v thousand_n so_o headstronge_a even_o in_o grosse_n and_o palpable_a error_n as_o that_o a_o man_n who_o capacity_n will_v scarce_o serve_v he_o to_o utter_v five_o word_n in_o sensible_a manner_n blush_v not_o for_o matter_n of_o scripture_n to_o think_v his_o own_o bare_a yea_o as_o good_a as_o the_o nay_o of_o all_o the_o wise_a grave_a and_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n which_o insolency_n must_v be_v repress_v or_o it_o will_v the_o very_a bane_n of_o christian_a religion_n behold_v open_a confession_n extort_a upon_o the_o rack_n of_o truth_n by_o which_o we_o may_v perceive_v how_o full_o and_o handsome_o your_o doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o every_o particular_a man_n read_v scripture_n and_o by_o it_o examine_v and_o judge_v the_o church_n teach_v have_v make_v dagon_n to_o fall_v before_o the_o ark_n but_o leave_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o bitter_a vaunt_a let_v we_o examine_v what_o demonstration_n out_o of_o scripture_n you_o bring_v for_o your_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n which_o with_o so_o much_o confidence_n you_o aver_v if_o your_o argue_v be_v idle_a and_o ridiculous_a in_o this_o point_n wherein_o you_o profess_v to_o be_v so_o confident_a what_o may_v be_v expect_v of_o you_o in_o other_o article_n especial_o be_v challenge_v to_o show_v your_o uttermost_a force_n by_o your_o adversary_n affirm_v 278._o affirm_v see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 278._o that_o he_o can_v never_o find_v any_o solid_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o protestant_n pretend_v divine_a ordinance_n your_o argument_n be_v seven_o draw_v from_o 7._o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o your_o antecedent_n common_o be_v either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a and_o your_o inference_n ridiculous_a the_o first_o the_o 8.28_o the_o act._n 8.28_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n your_o antecedent_n be_v more_o they_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_v i_o read_v not_o any_o direct_a praise_n of_o he_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o text_n only_o 8.28_o only_o act._n 8.28_o say_v he_o be_v sit_v in_o his_o chariot_n &_o read_v the_o prophet_n esay_n but_o suppose_v he_o be_v commend_v for_o his_o read_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o commendable_a be_v it_o consequent_a that_o therefore_o every_o christian_a by_o divine_a order_n and_o precept_n do_v the_o like_a be_v every_o man_n bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n for_o which_o any_o person_n be_v praise_v in_o scripture_n david_n be_v commend_v in_o scripture_n for_o rise_v at_o midnight_n to_o praise_n god_n be_v this_o argument_n good_a ergo_fw-la every_o christian_a be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o rise_v at_o midnight_n very_o this_o consequence_n be_v as_o good_a yea_o better_a both_o in_o respect_n of_o form_n and_o matter_n then_o be_v this_o of_o you_o the_o enunch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v scripture_n by_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o second_o be_v the_o 17.11_o the_o act._n 17.11_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la we_o may_v with_o
great_a confidence_n avouch_v that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o all_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a a_o strong_a argument_n the_o scripture_n do_v not_o say_v the_o beroean_n read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n nor_o do_v it_o term_v they_o noble_a for_o their_o read_n of_o scripture_n but_o for_o their_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n with_o alacrity_n and_o joy_n yea_o the_o term_n of_o the_o more_o noble_a be_v not_o give_v they_o in_o praise_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o to_o declare_v the_o quality_n of_o their_o gentry_n and_o so_o fulke_v his_o bible_n have_v the_o noble_a for_o birth_n but_o suppose_v the_o beroean_n read_v in_o their_o vulgar_a and_o be_v therefore_o call_v noble_a be_v not_o this_o inference_n ridiculous_a ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a precept_n that_o every_o man_n read_v scripture_n do_v not_o this_o argue_v deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o then_o answer_v the_o three_o 1.3_o three_o apoc._n 1.3_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o read_v and_o hear_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o all_o man_n read_v the_o scripture_n &_o that_o the_o church_n give_v they_o the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n here_o you_o not_o only_o argue_v impertinent_o but_o also_o detruncate_a &_o curtail_v the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n leave_v out_o word_n without_o which_o the_o text_n have_v a_o false_a and_o foolish_a sense_n for_o if_o all_o be_v bless_v that_o read_v and_o hear_v without_o mention_n or_o care_n of_o what_o than_o they_o be_v bless_v who_o read_v or_o hear_v tully_n &_o virgil_n or_o the_o book_n of_o knighthood_n why_o do_v you_o not_o let_v the_o scripture_n express_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v make_v man_n bless_v the_o scripture_n full_o and_o true_o cite_v say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o apocalyps_n which_o place_n either_o prove_v nothing_o for_o your_o purpose_n or_o else_o prove_v a_o necessity_n that_o every_o man_n read_v the_o apocalyps_n under_o penalty_n of_o otherwise_o not_o to_o be_v bless_v this_o perchance_o for_o very_a shame_n you_o dare_v not_o aver_v if_o you_o do_v what_o shall_v we_o or_o may_v we_o think_v of_o luther_n who_o do_v neither_o read_n nor_o hear_v nor_o believe_v the_o apocalyps_n as_o a_o prophecy_n or_o as_o the_o word_n of_o apocalip_n of_o nec_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la nec_fw-la propheticum_fw-la esse_fw-la puto_fw-la hunc_fw-la libellum_fw-la similem_fw-la reputo_fw-la quarto_fw-la esdrââ_n nec_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la deprendere_fw-la possum_fw-la quod_fw-la a_o spiritus_fw-la sancto_fw-la confectus_fw-la sit_fw-la lutherus_n praefat_fw-la in_o apocalip_n god_n and_o what_o a_o idle_a inference_n be_v this_o he_o be_v bless_v who_o read_v the_o apocalyps_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o every_o man_n read_v scripture_n s._n paul_n say_v 40._o say_v 1._o cor._n 7._o bonum_fw-la est_fw-la homini_fw-la mulierem_fw-la non_fw-la tangere_fw-la vers_fw-la 1._o bonum_fw-la est_fw-la illis_fw-la si_fw-la sic_fw-la permaneant_fw-la vers_fw-la 7._o beatior_fw-la erit_fw-la si_fw-la sic_fw-la permanserit_fw-la vers_fw-la 40._o he_o be_v bless_v that_o do_v not_o marry_v be_v it_o consequent_a ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v not_o to_o marry_v or_o ergo_fw-la man_n can_v be_v bless_v but_o only_o such_o as_o do_v not_o marry_v sure_o your_o wife_n will_v see_v this_o inference_n to_o be_v foolish_a &_o yet_o it_o be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o apocalyps_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o none_o be_v bless_v but_o such_o as_o read_v scripture_n the_o four_o argument_n the_o galathian_o read_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v translate_v into_o every_o vulgar_a dialect_n that_o the_o galathian_o read_v the_o scripture_n you_o prove_v by_o the_o cypher_n of_o galat._n 4.24_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v you_o that_o will_v be_v under_o the_o law_n have_v you_o not_o read_v the_o law_n for_o it_o be_v write_v abraham_n have_v two_o son_n this_o proof_n be_v very_o poor_a for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o affirm_v they_o read_v but_o doubt_o demand_n whether_o they_o have_v not_o read_v one_o particle_n of_o scripture_n also_o the_o question_n be_v move_v without_o doubt_n only_o to_o the_o learned_a galathian_o but_o suppose_n they_o read_v the_o scripture_n be_v it_o lawful_a thence_o to_o conclude_v ergo_fw-la they_o read_v it_o in_o their_o vulgar_a if_o they_o read_v it_o in_o their_o vulgar_a be_v it_o thence_o consequent_a ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v by_o divine_a ordinance_n to_o read_v and_o this_o so_o strict_o as_o the_o church_n may_v not_o forbid_v translation_n unto_o such_o as_o abuse_v they_o the_o five_o place_n the_o ephesian_n read_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a precept_n that_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o antecedent_n you_o show_v by_o the_o cypher_n ephes._n 3.4_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v read_v you_o may_v underctand_v my_o wisdom_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n a_o silly_a proof_n saint_n paul_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o ephesian_n read_v but_o only_o that_o by_o read_v his_o epistle_n they_o may_v understand_v his_o wisdom_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o grace_n and_o christian_a religion_n but_o suppose_v they_o read_v s_n paul_n epistle_n send_v unto_o they_o do_v it_o follow_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o layman_n promiscuous_o read_v scripture_n and_o that_o the_o church_n must_v translate_v scripture_n to_o that_o end_n this_o inference_n as_o even_o as_o good_a as_o this_o by_o read_v the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n peter_n one_o may_v understand_v the_o great_a knowledge_n he_o have_v of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v s._n peter_n epistle_n the_o sixth_o the_o colossian_n read_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o all_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v the_o scripture_n the_o antecedent_n be_v by_o you_o prove_v by_o the_o cypher_n coloss._n 4.16_o which_o say_v when_o this_o epistle_n have_v be_v read_v among_o you_o cause_v it_o also_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o loadicea_n this_o place_n do_v not_o prove_v your_o intent_n that_o they_o read_v so_o much_o as_o that_o epistle_n private_o by_o themselves_o but_o only_o that_o the_o same_o be_v public_o read_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o bishop_n or_o the_o priest_n or_o some_o church_n officer_n in_o the_o same_o language_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v original_o but_o suppose_v the_o colossian_n read_v this_o epistle_n private_o by_o themselves_o what_o a_o wooden_a inference_n be_v this_o ergo_fw-la every_o christian_a be_v bind_v by_o divine_a ordinance_n to_o read_v scripture_n or_o ergo_fw-la the_o church_n be_v oblige_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o provide_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o seven_o argument_n the_o thessalonian_o read_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la the_o read_v thereof_o by_o ignorant_a layman_n be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o antecedent_n you_o prove_v by_o the_o cypher_n 1._o thess._n 5.25_o which_o say_v i_o adjure_v you_o that_o this_o epistle_n be_v read_v unto_o all_o holy_a brethren_n neither_o do_v this_o text_n prove_v private_a read_n of_o scripture_n by_o layman_n but_o only_o public_a read_v thereof_o in_o the_o church_n but_o suppose_v they_o private_o read_v this_o epistle_n send_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v it_o consequent_a ergo_fw-la all_o layman_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v scripture_n and_o the_o church_n to_o translate_v the_o same_o into_o every_o tongue_n true_o this_o argument_n be_v even_o as_o good_a as_o this_o god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n of_o nothing_o ergo_fw-la minister_n may_v make_v argument_n of_o nothing_o or_o make_v argument_n good_a that_o have_v nothing_o in_o they_o or_o as_o this_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n &_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n ergo_fw-la every_o godly_a person_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n word_n by_o word_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalyps_n or_o ergo_fw-la godly_a person_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o read_v scripture_n gross_a ignorance_n of_o theology_n section_n iii_o beside_o the_o manifold_a error_n which_o you_o maintain_v in_o common_a with_o other_o minister_n you_o have_v diverse_a proper_a &_o peculiar_a to_o yourself_o and_o exceed_v gross_a whereby_o you_o declare_v how_o ignorant_a how_o be_v of_o theology_n i_o will_v only_o discover_v some_o few_o of_o they_o but_o those_o fundamental_a by_o which_o you_o so_o shake_v the_o fabric_n of_o your_o reply_n as_o no_o piece_n thereof_o remain_v âound_v the_o first_o
thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v they_o be_v âhe_n text_n and_o very_a letter_n of_o god_n word_n you_o may_v âith_v less_o shame_n have_v confess_v your_o ignorance_n that_o âou_fw-mi can_v say_v nothing_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o text_n in_o which_o âase_n the_o jesuit_n i_o presume_v will_v willing_o have_v âad_v recourse_n unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n entreat_v he_o âo_o enlighten_v his_o understanding_n with_o some_o sufficient_a âeason_n &_o will_v have_v hope_v to_o have_v obtain_v his_o âuite_n if_o not_o yet_o will_v he_o have_v believe_v god_n word_n âo_o have_v have_v some_o congruous_a sense_n though_o he_o see_v âot_n the_o same_o this_o be_v reverence_n due_a to_o the_o word_n âf_o supreme_a verity_n but_o now_o this_o say_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n with_o purpose_n to_o adore_v they_o be_v not_o the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n but_o a_o minister_n addition_n unto_o his_o word_n preâended_v by_o way_n of_o exposition_n hence_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n for_o which_o you_o send_v he_o unto_o god_n to_o have_v âhem_fw-mi answer_v tend_v not_o against_o the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n but_o against_o a_o minister_n explication_n thereof_o this_o be_v so_o why_o shall_v the_o jesuit_n find_v your_o interpretation_n to_o be_v sottish_a and_o senseless_a to_o his_o seeâing_n go_v unto_o god_n and_o not_o unto_o you_o for_o a_o solution_n of_o his_o question_n against_o it_o what_o law_n bind_v âim_a to_o adore_v your_o addition_n to_o god_n word_n as_o divine_a oracle_n such_o as_o he_o must_v believe_v though_o he_o can_v comprehend_v why_o shall_v he_o go_v unto_o god_n &_o pray_v âim_a to_o unfold_v the_o high_a misterye_n of_o your_o ministerial_a wisdom_n which_o you_o confess_v you_o do_v not_o understand_v yourself_o why_o may_v he_o not_o without_o more_o aâoe_n think_v your_o doctrine_n to_o be_v incomprehensible_a through_o want_n of_o reason_n as_o be_v the_o foolery_n of_o fanây_n not_o through_o height_n of_o wisdom_n as_o the_o misterye_n of_o faith_n show_v i_o say_v some_o reason_n that_o oblige_v jesuit_n to_o accept_v of_o your_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o can_v prove_v to_o be_v sottish_a and_o senseless_a so_o clear_o as_o you_o can_v answer_v or_o else_o confess_v that_o the_o jesuit_n by_o conference_n of_o text_n by_o consideration_n of_o antecedent_n &_o consequent_n by_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o place_n have_v so_o convince_v your_o exposition_n of_o falsehood_n as_o you_o have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o reply_v in_o good_a sense_n but_o to_o be_v rid_v of_o his_o urge_v you_o send_v he_o unto_o god_n for_o a_o answer_n your_o innumerable_a gross_a impertinencye_n in_o cypher_v and_o score_n of_o scripture_n §._o 7._o you_o have_v a_o manner_n of_o argue_v proper_a to_o yourself_o at_o lest_o which_o i_o find_v by_o none_o of_o your_o rank_n more_o frequent_o use_v then_o by_o yourself_o this_o be_v to_o set_v down_o a_o conceit_n of_o your_o own_o word_n suit_v with_o your_o own_o humour_n and_o then_o to_o score_v book_n chapter_n and_o verse_n of_o scripture_n on_o heap_n without_o relate_v the_o word_n as_o if_o your_o conceit_n be_v in_o those_o place_n record_v in_o so_o many_o syllable_n and_o because_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o cypher_v consist_v the_o strength_n of_o your_o whole_a book_n i_o will_v by_o some_o store_n of_o example_n decipher_v the_o gross_a vanity_n thereof_o and_o consequent_o of_o your_o whole_a book_n first_o you_o often_o cite_v text_n and_o chapter_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v not_o so_o make_v yourself_o like_a unto_o god_n qui_fw-la vocat_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la pag._n 10._o lin_v 24._o to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n you_o cite_v 2._o thessaly_n cap._n 5._o whereas_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o have_v only_o three_o chapter_n pag._n 106._o lin_v 17._o to_o prove_v that_o christian_n may_v depart_v from_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o they_o be_v member_n without_o join_v unto_o any_o other_o christiân_a church_n you_o cite_v hos._n 10.17_o whereas_o that_o chapter_n ââth_v only_o 15._o verse_n &_o not_o one_o to_o the_o purpose_n you_o breage_v it_o pag._n 45._o lin_v 17._o for_o this_o your_o say_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o faith_n you_o cite_v john_n 20.41_o whereas_o that_o âwentith_o chapter_n have_v verse_n only_o thirty_o one_o &_o not_o âne_a of_o they_o have_v this_o sentence_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o use_v of_o faith_n have_v you_o cite_v the_o word_n though_o you_o âad_v err_v in_o the_o book_n chapter_n or_o verse_n we_o may_v âave_n holpen_v your_o mistake_n now_o god_n only_o knowâth_v the_o text_n you_o intend_v second_o the_o place_n you_o cypher_n not_o only_o do_v âot_n contain_v the_o say_n for_o which_o you_o cypher_n âhem_fw-mi express_o and_o in_o so_o many_o word_n but_o also_o âhey_n be_v common_o so_o infinite_o impertinent_a and_o so_o âarre_o from_o the_o matter_n you_o intend_v to_o prove_v as_o be_v âited_v and_o apply_v to_o your_o purpose_n they_o be_v most_o ridiculous_a pag._n 224._o lin_v 26._o to_o prove_v that_o you_o minister_n âave_n such_o union_n with_o god_n as_o religious_a adoration_n âs_v due_a unto_o you_o you_o cypher_n act._n 10.34_o which_o âayth_v then_o peter_n open_v his_o mouth_n and_o say_v of_o a_o truth_n i_o perceive_v that_o god_n have_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n pag._n 30._o lin_v â5_n to_o prove_v scripture_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n you_o cypher_n luc._n 1.7_o which_o say_v salvation_n from_o our_o enemy_n and_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o they_o that_o hate_v us._n pag._n 105._o lin_v 13._o to_o prove_v that_o right_a faith_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o person_n live_v in_o a_o corrupt_a visible_a church_n as_o wheat_n among_o tare_n you_o cypher_n 1._o king_n 19.11_o and_o he_o say_v go_v forth_o and_o stand_v upon_o the_o mountain_n before_o the_o lord_n and_o behold_v the_o lord_n pass_v by_o pag._n 106._o lin_v 16._o to_o prove_v that_o christian_n may_v separate_v from_o all_o christian_a church_n and_o begin_v a_o new_a christian_a church_n of_o themselves_o you_o cypher_n 2._o cor._n 6.14_o which_o say_v be_v not_o yoke_v together_o in_o marriage_n with_o infidel_n pag._n 223._o lin_v 4._o to_o prove_v that_o in_o adoration_n christ_n &_o his_o image_n have_v no_o agreement_n you_o cypher_n 2._o cor._n 6.16_o which_o say_v what_o agreement_n between_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o idol_n pag._n 30._o lin_v 23._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o divine_a light_n show_v itself_o to_o be_v heavenly_a you_o cypher_n 2._o cor_fw-la 4.6_o god_n have_v shine_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o give_v the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n jesus_n pag._n 558._o lin_v 3._o to_o prove_v that_o live_a saint_n have_v not_o communion_n with_o the_o saint_n defunct_a by_o partake_v their_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n you_o cypher_n ephes._n 4.15_o but_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n you_o may_v grow_v up_o to_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n who_o be_v the_o head_n even_o christ._n to_o the_o same_o intent_n in_o the_o same_o place_n you_o cypher_n 1._o john_n 1.3_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v we_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o may_v have_v fellowship_n with_o we_o and_o true_o our_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n pag._n 546._o lin_v 1._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o reward_n of_o work_n may_v be_v give_v of_o free_a bounty_n and_o not_o of_o debt_n you_o cite_v psalm_n 127._o v._n 2._o it_o be_v vain_a for_o you_o to_o rise_v up_o early_o or_o to_o sit_v up_o late_o to_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o sorrow_n for_o so_o he_o give_v his_o belove_a sleep_n also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n you_o cypher_n ezech._n 29._o v._o 18._o every_o head_n be_v bald_a and_o every_o shoulder_n be_v peal_v yet_o have_v he_o no_o wage_n nor_o his_o army_n for_o tyrus_n pag._n 551._o lin_v ult._n to_o prove_v that_o the_o b._n virgin_n say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n or_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la whereof_o one_o petition_n be_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n you_o cite_v act._n 1.14_o they_o continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n together_o with_o the_o woman_n and_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n which_o text_n prove_v the_o virgin_n pray_v but_o that_o her_o prayer_n be_v vocal_a and_o not_o pure_a mental_a and_o if_o vocal_a that_o she_o say_v pater_fw-la noster_fw-la rather_o than_o magnificat_fw-la or_o benedictus_n or_o some_o of_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n who_o that_o be_v sober_a will_v undertake_v by_o this_o text_n to_o conclude_v pag._n 43._o lin_v 2._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a in_o genere_fw-la regulae_fw-la for_o
error_n and_o so_o fallible_a that_o every_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o people_n for_o fear_n of_o be_v deceive_v 116._o deceive_v john_n white_a way_n pag._n 116._o must_v examine_v her_o teach_n yea_o yourself_o affirm_v etc._n affirm_v reply_v pag._n 136._o lin_v 20._o etc._n etc._n that_o not_o whosoever_o contradict_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n but_o only_o such_o as_o oppose_v the_o whole_a church_n rash_o without_o cause_n or_o inordinate_o ergo_fw-la protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n give_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o her_o lawful_a authority_n pag._n 169._o the_o jesuit_n do_v charge_v you_o to_o extenuate_v the_o value_n of_o our_o lord_n passion_n in_o say_v that_o the_o same_o do_v not_o purchase_v and_o merit_v true_a inward_a purity_n and_o sanctity_n to_o man_n soul_n and_o action_n against_o this_o you_o say_v 20._o say_v reply_v pag._n 169._o lin_v 20._o no_o christian_a church_n ever_o prize_v the_o oblation_n and_o merit_n more_o high_o and_o religious_o than_o we_o great_a praise_n or_o rather_o pride_n even_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o more_o religious_o devout_a unto_o nor_o more_o high_o conceit_a of_o christ_n jesus_n &_o his_o passion_n than_o you_o be_v well_o how_o prove_v you_o it_o heb._n 10.14_o it_o be_v write_v with_o one_o oblation_n he_o do_v consummate_v his_o sanctify_v for_o ever_o john_n 1.29_o behold_v the_o lamb_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v even_o just_a as_o if_o a_o arian_n shall_v argue_v in_o this_o sort_n it_o be_v write_v john_n 10.30_o ay_o and_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o ergo_fw-la never_o christian_a church_n prize_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n nor_o think_v more_o high_o or_o religious_o of_o his_o equality_n with_o his_o father_n than_o we_o will_v not_o this_o argument_n shall_v a_o arian_n use_v it_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v more_o ridiculous_a then_o religious_a and_o the_o same_o force_n have_v this_o your_o argument_n as_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o put_v together_o into_o form_n the_o proposition_n thereof_o the_o one_o scripture_n the_o other_o your_o assertion_n it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n who_o by_o his_o one_o oblation_n on_o the_o cross_n do_v consummate_v the_o sanctify_v for_o ever_o protestant_n mercedem_fw-la protestant_n caluin_n antidote_n trident_n in_o sess_v 5_o permaneâ_n verè_fw-la peccatum_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la neque_fw-la per_fw-la baptismun_n uno_fw-la die_fw-la extinguitur_fw-la &_o lib._n 3._o institut_fw-la c._n 14._o §._o 9_o nullum_fw-la à _fw-la sanctis_fw-la exire_fw-la potest_fw-la opus_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la mereatur_fw-la iustan_fw-mi opprobrij_fw-la mercedem_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n take_v not_o away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o same_o do_v true_o and_o proper_o remain_v in_o iustify_v person_n and_o be_v only_o hide_a and_o not_o impute_v yea_o yourself_o affirm_v pag._n 170._o and_o 171._o that_o sin_n be_v still_o adjacent_a unto_o all_o the_o virtuous_a action_n of_o just_a man_n and_o that_o this_o imperfection_n &_o sinfulness_n be_v only_o cover_v by_o christ_n his_o merit_n and_o purity_n that_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v ergo_fw-la protestant_n prize_v the_o value_n of_o christ_n passion_n for_o the_o effectual_a and_o perfect_a sanctification_n cleanse_v and_o consummation_n of_o saint_n and_o their_o action_n as_o high_o and_o religious_o as_o ever_o do_v any_o christian_a church_n scripture_n abuse_v and_o falsify_v §._o 9_o i_o will_v conclude_v this_o section_n with_o some_o few_o example_n of_o fraud_n and_o falsehood_n in_o your_o cite_n of_o scripture_n where_o you_o help_v the_o dice_n by_o addition_n or_o subtraction_n of_o some_o particle_n or_o word_n to_o make_v the_o scripture_n find_v on_o your_o side_n although_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o your_o score_n up_o in_o cypher_n of_o so_o many_o impertinent_a text_n though_o be_v discover_v it_o be_v ridiculous_a be_v also_o not_o without_o fraud_n by_o you_o use_v that_o you_o may_v make_v show_n of_o scripture_n for_o such_o article_n of_o your_o doctrine_n for_o which_o you_o know_v in_o conscience_n that_o no_o true_a proof_n from_o scripture_n can_v be_v produce_v the_o text_n john_n 5.39_o abuse_v search_v the_o scripture_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o &_o with_o a_o falsehood_n more_o than_o once_o repeat_v in_o your_o book_n you_o will_v show_v that_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v so_o easy_a as_o unlearned_a people_n may_v understand_v the_o sense_n thereof_o without_o rely_v on_o the_o church_n tradition_n &_o exposition_n to_o this_o purpose_n you_o say_v pag._n 9_o lin_v 9_o our_o saviour_n command_v even_o simple_a people_n to_o use_v the_o scripture_n joan._n 5.39_o one_o will_v according_a to_o this_o your_o citation_n think_v that_o the_o sacred_a text_n do_v express_o say_v that_o search_v the_o scripture_n be_v speak_v unto_o simple_a people_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v a_o fancy_n by_o you_o cunning_o foist_v into_o the_o text_n against_o the_o plain_a evidence_n thereof_o which_o show_v that_o search_v the_o scripture_n be_v say_v not_o to_o the_o simple_a people_n but_o to_o the_o church-magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o these_o three_o argument_n evince_n first_o the_o word_n jew_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n do_v signify_v the_o magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n exclude_v the_o simple_a people_n this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o forty_o example_n but_o this_o may_v suffice_v john_n 7.13_o 9.18.22_o joan._n 1.9_o &_o 2.18.20_o &_o 5.15.16.18_o &_o 7.1.11.35_o &_o 8.22.48_o &_o 9.18.22_o there_o be_v much_o mutter_n about_o he_o our_o saviour_n among_o the_o common_a people_n yet_o none_o dare_v speak_v open_o of_o he_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o jew_n behold_v the_o jew_n oppose_v &_o condistinguish_v against_o common_a people_n &_o fear_v of_o they_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o the_o jew_n the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n do_v understand_v the_o magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o that_o word_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n dixit_fw-la jesus_n judaeis_n scrutamini_fw-la scripturas_fw-la etc._n etc._n 5.32_o john_n 5.32_o therefore_o the_o word_n be_v say_v to_o the_o magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o common_a people_n be_v exclude_v second_o our_o saviour_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o say_v search_v the_o scripture_n unto_o they_o that_o send_v the_o embassage_n unto_o john_n to_o know_v what_o he_o be_v 5.34_o john_n 5.34_o vos_fw-la misistis_fw-la ad_fw-la joannem_fw-la but_o clear_v it_o be_v that_o the_o author_n of_o this_o embassage_n be_v not_o the_o simple_a people_n but_o the_o church-magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n ergo_fw-la not_o unto_o simple_a people_n but_o unto_o churchman_n and_o church-magistrate_n do_v our_o saviour_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n three_o our_o saviour_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n unto_o man_n high_o persuade_v of_o the_o sole-sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n think_v in_o they_o to_o have_v eternal_a life_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n mihi_fw-la ibid._n vers_fw-la 33._o testimonium_fw-la perâibuit_fw-la veritati_fw-la ibid._n vers_fw-la 36._o opera_fw-la quae_fw-la facere_fw-la testimonium_fw-la perhibent_fw-la ibid_fw-la vers_fw-la 37._o pater_fw-la qui_fw-la misit_fw-la i_o testimonium_fw-la perhibuit_fw-la mihi_fw-la search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n hence_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n neither_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n nor_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o work_n and_o miracle_n nor_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o father_n voice_n from_o heaven_n now_o that_o the_o simple_a people_n be_v thus_o conceited_a of_o scripture_n against_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o think_v whereas_o that_o the_o church-magistracy_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v thus_o conceited_a the_o gospel_n do_v express_o declare_v there_o we_o read_v how_o they_o appeal_v from_o his_o miracle_n to_o moses_n his_o book_n bid_v such_o as_o be_v lead_v away_o by_o his_o work_n surgit_fw-la joan._n 7_o 52.5â_n scrutare_fw-la scripturas_fw-la &_o vide_fw-la quia_fw-la à _fw-la galilaea_n propheta_fw-la non_fw-la surgit_fw-la to_o search_v the_o scripture_n &_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n can_v not_o be_v the_o prophet_n therefore_o to_o these_o man_n stand_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n &_o sole-sufficiency_n thereof_o unto_o eternal_a life_n &_o not_o to_o simple_a people_n do_v our_o saviour_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n without_o i_o whereas_o even_o these_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o hence_o appear_v another_o falsification_n of_o
this_o place_n by_o cog_a in_o your_o own_o conceit_n as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a text_n to_o wit_n that_o our_o saviour_n by_o these_o word_n give_v a_o command_n to_o use_v scripture_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a he_o do_v not_o by_o way_n of_o command_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n but_o by_o way_n of_o permission_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o obstinacy_n whereby_o they_o will_v not_o without_o scripture_n believe_v in_o he_o upon_o other_o most_o sufficient_a divine_a testimony_n so_o that_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n have_v this_o sense_n see_v you_o will_v not_o be_v win_v to_o believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n nor_o of_o my_o miracle_n nor_o of_o my_o father_n voice_n from_o heaven_n but_o appeal_v from_o these_o testimony_n unto_o scripture_n think_v that_o in_o they_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n search_v the_o scripture_n in_o god_n name_n i_o be_o content_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o superficial_o look_v upon_o they_o but_o search_v deep_o into_o they_o for_o be_v thus_o search_v into_o they_o yield_v testimony_n unto_o i_o certain_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v be_v of_o the_o protestant_n mind_n and_o will_v have_v give_v the_o precept_n they_o pretend_v he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n but_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o only_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v have_v or_o because_o nothing_o necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v until_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o they_o this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o rather_o rebuke_v the_o jew_n for_o this_o their_o ministerial_a conceit_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o any_o other_o testimony_n without_o scripture_n he_o do_v not_o therefore_o command_v they_o to_o use_v the_o scripture_n but_o see_v they_o obstinate_o addict_v unto_o only_a scripture_n he_o permit_v they_o to_o proceed_v in_o their_o own_o way_n even_o as_o when_o protestant_n can_v be_v win_v to_o believe_v neither_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n that_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n work_n that_o be_v of_o miracle_n do_v daily_o in_o his_o church_n nor_o the_o father_n lively_a voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o be_v god_n word_n unwritten_a we_o at_o last_o say_v unto_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o even_o they_o give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n hence_o two_o thing_n appear_v first_o that_o your_o two_o assertion_n that_o christ_n say_v search_n the_o scripture_n do_v command_v and_o command_v even_o simple_a people_n to_o use_v scripture_n be_v two_o fancy_n of_o your_o own_o foist_v into_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o way_n of_o interpretation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o historical_a relation_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n which_o be_v gross_a abuse_n thereof_o second_o that_o if_o we_o search_v deep_o into_o this_o text_n search_v the_o scripture_n the_o same_o do_v clear_o condemn_v the_o protestant_a fancy_n that_o only_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n and_o principle_n of_o jewish_a infidelity_n the_o text_n matth._n 24.24_o that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v deceive_v be_v it_o possible_a gross_o apply_v thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 586._o although_o the_o tradition_n and_o teach_v of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a yet_o unlearned_a people_n where_o they_o enjoy_v the_o free_a use_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o ancient_a time_n all_o people_n do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o ordinary_o assi_v they_o by_o grace_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v to_o damnation_n math._n 24.24_o thus_o you_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o be_v proud_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o private_a fancy_n against_o the_o teach_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o this_o speech_n you_o assure_v they_o that_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n though_o they_o will_v not_o regard_v the_o church_n as_o the_o pillar_n ground_n and_o infallible_a mistress_n of_o truth_n yet_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v and_o assist_v they_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v into_o damnable_a error_n now_o what_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o christianity_n but_o this_o false_a and_o proud_a persuasion_n insert_v into_o the_o head_n of_o sot_n trinitarian_n anabaptist_n arian_n brownist_n familian_n do_v they_o not_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n who_o to_o that_o end_n so_o studious_o peruse_v their_o bible_n be_v they_o not_o careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n that_o go_v so_o ready_o to_o the_o fire_n rather_o than_o abandon_v the_o doctrine_n which_o by_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o vulgar_a bible_n they_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o save_a truth_n in_o these_o wretch_n you_o may_v see_v how_o in_o man_n desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v the_o ordinance_n of_o read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n without_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o infallible_a mistress_n and_o as_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o seed_n &_o springe_n of_o heresy_n so_o be_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n matth._n 24.24_o most_o violent_o draw_v to_o confirm_v it_o for_o what_o say_v the_o text_n they_o the_o false_a prophet_n shall_v do_v great_a sign_n &_o wonder_n that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v induce_v into_o error_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o which_o text_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n can_v be_v final_o entrap_v in_o damnable_a error_n this_o be_v understand_v as_o divine_v speak_v in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v they_o can_v be_v deceive_v because_o god_n ordain_v and_o foresee_v that_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o mean_n to_o know_v save_v truth_n which_o mean_n be_v to_o cleave_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o trust_v their_o own_o skill_n now_o then_o with_o what_o engine_n can_v you_o from_o this_o truth_n wrest_v your_o paradox_n that_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n can_v be_v damn_v be_v all_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n that_o read_v the_o bible_n god_n elect_a if_o heretic_n dispute_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o elect_n can_v be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n ergo_fw-la if_o they_o presume_v on_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o bible_n not_o respect_v the_o church_n doctrine_n as_o infallible_a they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n why_o may_v not_o murderer_n argue_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o elect_a can_v be_v damn_v therefore_o if_o they_o commit_v murder_v every_o day_n and_o so_o persevere_v until_o the_o end_n they_o can_v be_v damn_v this_o argument_n be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o for_o the_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n can_v no_o more_o be_v save_v they_o murderer_n if_o our_o saviour_n say_v true_a who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n the_o text_n act._n 17.11_o about_o the_o beroean_n abuse_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o follow_v their_o fancy_n get_v by_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n you_o say_v pag._n â87_n unlearned_a people_n by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o scripture_n may_v certain_o know_v whether_o it_o err_v or_o not_o act._n 17.11_o thus_o you_o what_o say_v the_o text_n that_o thence_o you_o may_v make_v such_o deduction_n these_o be_v more_o noble_a than_o those_o of_o thessalonica_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n search_v daily_o whether_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o now_o behold_v your_o manifold_a abuse_n of_o this_o sacred_a narration_n first_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v these_o beroean_n be_v unlearned_a how_o then_o can_v you_o hence_o conclude_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o ability_n of_o unlearned_a people_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n again_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v that_o by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n with_o scripture_n they_o come_v to_o know_v certain_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o believe_v his_o doctrine_n they_o search_v the_o scripture_n about_o the_o same_o without_o mention_n of_o the_o success_n of_o their_o search_n and_o if_o they_o be_v resolve_v by_o scripture_n this_o be_v only_o in_o one_o point_n to_o wit_n whether_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a and_o express_v how_o they_o can_v you_o hence_o prove_v that_o unlearned_a people_n may_v know_v certain_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a by_o compare_v the_o same_o
sin_n every_o way_n what_o be_v hence_o consequent_a that_o except_o you_o recall_v your_o censure_n you_o must_v censure_v the_o father_n as_o graceless_a damnable_a liar_n frantic_a fool_n so_o great_a be_v your_o passion_n and_o so_o small_a your_o judgement_n in_o rail_v at_o the_o jesuit_n second_o you_o be_v to_o be_v pity_v in_o regard_n your_o passion_n be_v so_o extreme_a as_o you_o can_v join_v together_o the_o part_n of_o your_o discourse_n in_o any_o sensible_a manner_n you_o say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v immaculate_a and_o pure_a from_o actual_a sin_n be_v like_a to_o acesius_n the_o novatian_a who_o think_v himself_o pure_a and_o innocent_a and_o deny_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n unto_o man_n that_o sin_v after_o baptism_n so_o leave_v no_o ladder_n to_o climb_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o only_o that_o of_o innocency_n what_o can_v be_v more_o inept_v then_o to_o lay_v this_o censure_n on_o the_o jesuite_n in_o that_o respect_n if_o the_o jesuite_n hold_v the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o have_v be_v ever_o free_a from_o actual_a sin_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o must_v also_o so_o esteem_v of_o himself_o as_o do_v the_o novatian_a may_v he_o not_o judge_v she_o to_o be_v a_o immaculate_a virgin_n and_o yet_o himself_o a_o sinful_a man_n crave_v pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n by_o her_o prayer_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o fond_a also_o as_o to_o think_v himself_o unspotted_a &_o pure_a from_o sin_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o must_v needs_o with_o acesius_n exclude_v from_o salvation_n all_o penitent_a sinner_n &_o allow_v no_o ladder_n unto_o heaven_n but_o only_o that_o of_o purity_n take_v away_o the_o other_o of_o penance_n sure_o you_o can_v but_o see_v this_o your_o inuective_n to_o be_v not_o only_o wrongful_a but_o also_o witless_a the_o same_o distemper_n of_o passion_n cause_v you_o not_o to_o mark_v the_o want_n of_o coherence_n betwixt_o your_o textuall_a assertion_n and_o marginal_a proof_n in_o your_o text_n you_o say_v the_o jesuit_n by_o say_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v pure_a from_o sin_n have_v lose_v his_o wit_n by_o the_o fever_n of_o pride_n in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o cite_v in_o your_o margin_n this_o sentence_n of_o s._n cyprian_n quisquis_fw-la se_fw-la inculpatum_fw-la dixerit_fw-la aut_fw-la superbus_fw-la aut_fw-la stultus_fw-la est_fw-la who_o so_o do_v say_v that_o himself_o be_v without_o sin_n be_v either_o proud_a or_o a_o fool_n do_v you_o not_o yet_o perceive_v the_o wonderful_a impertinency_n of_o this_o proof_n let_v the_o same_o be_v put_v into_o form_n &_o then_o you_o will_v perchance_o present_o feel_v it_o whosoever_o say_v that_o himself_o be_v without_o sin_n be_v a_o proud_a fool_n the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n be_v without_o sin_n ergo_fw-la the_o jesuit_n be_v a_o proud_a fool_n very_o the_o jesuit_n be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o fool_n as_o he_o who_o do_v not_o perceive_v the_o folly_n of_o this_o argue_v which_o be_v just_a as_o good_a as_o this_o who_o so_o think_v himself_o the_o holy_a &_o learn_a divine_a of_o this_o age_n be_v a_o very_a fool_n but_o francis_n white_n think_v john_n caluin_n the_o holy_a and_o learn_a divine_a of_o this_o age_n ergo_fw-la francis_n white_n be_v a_o very_a fool_n suppose_v you_o be_v thus_o conceited_a of_o caluin_n and_o some_o catholic_a divine_a shall_v thus_o come_v upon_o you_o for_o the_o same_o will_v not_o his_o folly_n seem_v prodigious_a unto_o all_o learned_a man_n other_o falsification_n i_o may_v yet_o further_o discover_v as_o pag._n 5._o lin_v 8._o where_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v always_o visible_a 16._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o you_o bring_v the_o donatist_n objection_n the_o scripture_n foretell_v a_o large_a revolt_n from_o heavenly_a truth_n 2._o thessaly_n 2.2_o these_o word_n from_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v add_v to_o the_o text_n for_o the_o text_n only_o say_v first_o there_o shall_v come_v the_o defection_n or_o revolt_v which_o most_o expositor_n understand_v from_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o pag._n 519._o cite_v 1._o john_n 5.18_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o for_o the_o divine_a generation_n keep_v he_o and_o the_o wicked_a one_o touch_v he_o not_o you_o omit_v sin_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o avouch_v what_o you_o so_o bitter_o rail_v against_o that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n by_o special_a grace_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n likewise_o to_o reprove_v the_o jesuite_n doctrine_n that_o saint_n though_o they_o sin_v venial_o yet_o do_v not_o sin_n against_o the_o divine_a law_n for_o this_o law_n do_v exact_a thing_n of_o man_n no_o further_o than_o they_o be_v necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n but_o venial_a sin_n destroy_v or_o oppose_v nothing_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o eternal_a life_n against_o this_o doctrine_n you_o argue_v pag._n 522._o lin_v 20._o if_o just_a man_n have_v any_o sin_n they_o perform_v not_o all_o the_o divine_a law_n require_v for_o every_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n 1._o john_n 3.4_o here_o to_o the_o text_n of_o your_o english_a bible_n you_o add_v divine_a the_o text_n be_v every_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n or_o of_o a_o law_n and_o this_o sentence_n be_v true_a for_o though_o venial_a sin_n be_v not_o against_o the_o divine_a special_a law_n because_o they_o be_v not_o against_o charity_n and_o salvation_n yet_o they_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n which_o bind_v man_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v not_o to_o be_v forgetful_a &_o inconsiderate_a even_o in_o small_a matter_n and_o though_o some_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n recommend_v these_o small_a thing_n unto_o we_o it_o be_v only_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o we_o be_v bind_v unto_o by_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n not_o to_o lay_v new_a divine_a obligation_n upon_o we_o many_o such_o other_o trick_n of_o your_o falsehood_n i_o omit_v to_o discover_v for_o brevitye_n sake_n ignorance_n fraud_n and_o falsehood_n in_o allege_v father_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o author_n sect_n v._o in_o this_o subject_n i_o may_v be_v large_a you_o be_v copious_a in_o your_o quotation_n whereof_o scarce_o one_o be_v to_o be_v find_v which_o be_v examine_v to_o the_o original_n be_v not_o either_o impertinent_a or_o wrest_v against_o the_o author_n mind_n or_o falsify_v by_o mistranslation_n in_o the_o very_a text_n which_o to_o discover_v full_o and_o particular_o be_v a_o hugh_o work_n and_o hardly_o worth_a the_o labour_n and_o no_o way_n necessary_a for_o even_o as_o to_o the_o end_n that_o one_o may_v know_v the_o sea_n to_o be_v salt_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a that_o he_o drink_v up_o the_o whole_a main_n two_o or_o three_o taste_n take_v here_o and_o there_o may_v sufficient_o resolve_v he_o of_o this_o truth_n so_o four_o or_o five_o example_n in_o every_o kind_n may_v more_o than_o abundant_o serve_v to_o make_v this_o your_o want_n of_o conscience_n know_v unto_o your_o unwary_a credent_n that_o they_o may_v see_v who_o they_o trust_v in_o a_o business_n that_o do_v so_o high_o import_v these_o your_o falsification_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n some_o crafty_a and_o subtle_a some_o gross_a and_o impudent_a crafty_a falsification_n be_v when_o to_o draw_v author_n to_o your_o purpose_n in_o your_o translation_n of_o their_o text_n you_o either_o add_v to_o it_o or_o detract_v from_o it_o some_o word_n or_o particle_n thereby_o change_v the_o sense_n or_o else_o cite_v their_o word_n true_o but_o contrary_a to_o their_o meaning_n gross_a falsification_n be_v when_o you_o lie_v doctrine_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o author_n which_o they_o reject_v even_o in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o cite_v both_o these_o kind_n of_o falsehood_n s._n paul_n do_v signify_v to_o be_v practise_v by_o heretic_n ephes._n 4_o 8._o where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v leave_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o blast_n of_o every_o doctrine_n by_o the_o wiliness_n of_o man_n to_o circumvent_v weakling_n in_o error_n what_o be_v the_o blast_n of_o heretical_a doctrine_n but_o their_o violent_a and_o audacious_a falsifying_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n what_o their_o wiliness_n to_o circumvent_v in_o error_n but_o crafty_a corruption_n by_o steal_v away_o or_o cog_a in_o word_n in_o their_o produce_v of_o the_o monument_n of_o chistian_n antiquity_n the_o greek_a word_n use_v by_o s._n paul_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v proper_o cog_a of_o the_o dice_n or_o help_v the_o dice_n crafty_o to_o cast_v what_o chance_n they_o please_v even_o so_o heretic_n by_o help_v the_o you_o by_o cog_a word_n in_o &_o out_o of_o the_o text_n make_v
scripture_n &_o father_n speak_v as_o they_o please_v this_o your_o cog_a in_o scripture_n be_v already_o discover_v now_o about_o the_o father_n seven_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n about_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n falsify_v §._o 1._o to_o note_v some_o few_o of_o the_o many_o pag._n 22._o lin_v 5._o to_o make_v s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o favour_v your_o protestant_a fancy_n that_o man_n be_v resolve_v in_o faith_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n you_o cite_v he_o as_o say_v 4._o say_v cont._n ep._n fund_z c._n 4._o manifest_a verity_n be_v to_o be_v prâfered_v before_o all_o other_o thing_n whereby_o i_o be_o hâld_a in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o this_o quotation_n the_o word_n other_o be_v cog_v into_o the_o text_n to_o change_v the_o sense_n as_o if_o s._n augustine_n have_v say_v i_o have_v many_o motive_n to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n among_o other_o the_o manifest_a verity_n of_o the_o thing_n reveal_v &_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o s._n augustine_n true_a text_n be_v manifest_a verity_n so_o clear_o show_v as_o no_o doubt_n thereof_o can_v be_v make_v praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o thing_n whereby_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o manifest_a verity_n be_v not_o the_o stay_n and_o motive_n of_o s._n augustine_n faith_n for_o what_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o motive_n that_o stay_v he_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v none_o of_o his_o motive_n but_o he_o say_v that_o manife_a verity_n so_o clear_o shine_v as_o no_o doubt_n thereof_o can_v be_v make_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o his_o motive_n ergo_fw-la s_n augustin_n be_v not_o befool_v with_o this_o foppery_n that_o faith_n be_v resolve_v final_o into_o the_o manifest_a resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n near_o to_o the_o same_o c._n same_o pag._n 21._o lin_v â2_n and_o in_o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr b._n c._n place_n you_o cite_v s._n augustine_n 3._o augustine_n aug._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n c._n 3._o say_v that_o former_a counsel_n be_v correct_v by_o latter_a whence_o you_o infer_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a for_o what_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a if_o that_o of_o counsel_n be_v fallible_a in_o which_o say_v you_o some_o papist_n place_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n here_o you_o show_v ignorance_n and_o falsehood_n ignorance_n about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n for_o though_o some_o prefer_v the_o council_n before_o the_o pope_n &_o other_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o council_n in_o case_n the_o whole_a council_n shall_v be_v opposite_a to_o the_o pope_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v define_v which_o case_n yet_o never_o happen_v yet_o all_o prefer_v perpetual_a tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n before_o both_o pope_n and_o council_n for_o how_o can_v we_o know_v that_o church_n definition_n make_v by_o pope_n &_o council_n be_v infallible_a but_o by_o tradition_n some_o may_v say_v that_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o scripture_n it_o be_v true_a but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v the_o text_n assume_v in_o this_o proof_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n scripture_n but_o by_o tradition_n how_o shall_v we_o be_v so_o sure_a that_o we_o true_o expound_v the_o text_n aright_o do_v we_o not_o see_v the_o tradition_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v still_o conformable_a to_o the_o sense_n we_o give_v of_o those_o scripture_n your_o falsehood_n be_v in_o that_o you_o conceal_v the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v in_o s._n augustine_n sentence_n which_o have_v you_o set_v down_o erat_fw-la aug._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n c._n 3._o ipsa_fw-la plenaria_fw-la concilia_fw-la saepe_fw-la priora_fw-la posterioribus_fw-la emendari_fw-la cùm_fw-la experimento_fw-la âerum_fw-la aperitur_fw-la quod_fw-la clausum_fw-la erat_fw-la it_o will_v have_v be_v evident_a that_o he_o do_v attribute_v fallibility_n and_o corrigibility_n unto_o counsel_n only_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o ecclesiastical_a law_n about_o manner_n for_o the_o whole_a sentence_n be_v among_o plenary_a counsel_n the_o former_a be_v correct_v by_o the_o latter_a cùm_fw-la experimento_fw-la rerum_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o by_o experiment_n of_o thing_n something_o be_v bring_v to_o light_v which_o before_o be_v hide_v now_o the_o truth_n of_o matter_n and_o mystery_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o light_v by_o time_n and_o experience_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v of_o which_o one_o say_v quicquid_fw-la sub_fw-la terra_fw-la est_fw-la in_o apricum_fw-la proferet_fw-la aetas_fw-la therefore_o s._n augustine_n speak_v not_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n about_o manner_n which_o in_o some_o case_n time_n and_o experience_n do_v discover_v to_o be_v inconvenient_a &_o therefore_o to_o be_v recall_v in_o the_o same_o place_n to_o prove_v s._n augustine_n etc._n augustine_n pag._n 21._o in_o lit_fw-fr b._n etc._n etc._n hold_v that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o perpetual_a tradition_n may_v be_v deceive_v you_o cite_v he_o say_v falluntur_fw-la say_v aug._n l._n 2._o cont_n crescon_n c._n 21._o eâclesiastici_n judices_fw-la sicut_fw-la homines_fw-la plerumque_fw-la falluntur_fw-la ecclesiastical_a judge_n as_o man_n may_v be_v deceive_v and_o falluntur_fw-la and_o lib_fw-la 2._o the_o baptism_n c._n 3._o episcoporun_n litteras_fw-la quae_fw-la post_fw-la confirmatum_fw-la canonem_fw-la scriptae_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n licere_fw-la reprehendi_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la se_fw-la christo_fw-la praeponere_fw-la ut_fw-la putet_fw-la à _fw-la se_fw-la iudicatos_fw-la baptizare_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la ab_fw-la hillo_o autem_fw-la iudicatos_fw-la posse_fw-la cùm_fw-la ille_fw-la semper_fw-la veraciter_fw-la iudicet_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la autem_fw-la judices_fw-la sicut_fw-la homines_fw-la plerumque_fw-la falluntur_fw-la the_o writing_n of_o any_o bishop_n since_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v question_v and_o call_v into_o doubt_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o know_v in_o your_o conscience_n that_o s._n augustine_n in_o both_o the_o place_n be_v allege_v opposite_o to_o his_o meaning_n in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o speak_v not_o about_o church-errour_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o about_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o church_n judgment_n concern_v criminal_a cause_n for_o this_o be_v his_o whole_a sentence_n the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o prefer_v herself_o before_o christ_n as_o to_o say_v that_o man_n condemn_v by_o he_o as_o wicked_a may_v valide_o baptize_v but_o such_o as_o she_o do_v condemn_v may_v not_o seeing_z he_o in_o his_o judgement_n never_o err_v whereas_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n as_o be_v man_n be_v often_o deceive_v who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o you_o wrong_v saint_n augustine_n to_o bring_v this_o his_o testimony_n for_o his_o hold_v the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v fallible_a and_o no_o less_o injurious_o you_o produce_v he_o in_o the_o second_o testimony_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o single_a bishop_n consider_v each_o of_o they_o by_o themselves_o that_o their_o writing_n be_v obnoxious_a unto_o error_n and_o so_o may_v be_v question_v and_o examine_v by_o scripture_n thence_o infer_v that_o the_o donatist_n shall_v not_o wonder_v that_o he_o do_v examine_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n cyprian_n against_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n so_o clear_v it_o be_v he_o speak_v of_o single_a bishop_n not_o of_o tradition_n by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o bishop_n pag._n 37._o lin_v 33._o for_o only_o scripture_n you_o cite_v the_o same_o s._n august_n as_o thus_o write_v 3._o write_v august_n in_o epist·_n 1._o joan_n tract_n 3._o the_o church_n have_v only_o two_o breast_n wherewith_o she_o feed_v her_o child_n the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n you_o corrupt_v this_o place_n by_o addition_n &_o false_a translation_n first_o by_o add_v to_o the_o text_n the_o word_n only_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v s._n aug._n hold_v that_o no_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n whereas_o 22._o whereas_o l._n 4._o de_fw-fr baptis_n c._n 6._o &_o 24._o l._n 5._o c._n 22._o he_o have_v a_o express_a principle_n to_o the_o contrary_a many_o time_n repeat_v in_o his_o work_n sundry_a thing_n to_o wit_n of_o faith_n such_o as_o be_v the_o doctrine_n that_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n be_v valide_fw-la be_v most_o just_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n though_o they_o be_v not_o where_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n second_o s._n august_n say_v not_o as_o you_o translate_v that_o the_o church_n two_o breast_n be_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n
for_o they_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o she_o have_v no_o milk_n in_o her_o two_o breast_n but_o write_v doctrine_n but_o he_o say_v she_o two_o breast_n be_v the_o two_o testament_n of_o divine_a scripture_n hence_o you_o may_v gather_v that_o in_o each_o of_o her_o breast_n in_o each_o of_o the_o testament_n the_o milk_n of_o scripture_n be_v contain_v but_o that_o only_o the_o milk_n of_o write_a doctrine_n be_v in_o they_o contain_v you_o can_v from_o this_o text_n true_o cite_v infer_v &_o therefore_o both_o by_o addition_n and_o transposition_n of_o word_n you_o help_v the_o dice_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n and_o that_o though_o this_o tradition_n may_v be_v false_a yet_o faith_n will_v subsist_v because_o there_o remain_v always_o a_o high_a and_o more_o sovereign_a judge_n to_o wit_n god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o i_o say_v you_o c_o you_o pag._n 90._o in_o margin_n lit_fw-fr c_o cite_v this_o text_n of_o intellectus_fw-la of_o augustin_n lib._n 11._o ãâã_d faust._n c._n â_o tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la quâdam_fw-la in_o sublimi_fw-la collocata_fw-la est_fw-la cvi_fw-la seruiât_fw-la omnis_fw-la fidelis_n &_o pius_fw-la intellectus_fw-la s._n augustine_n it_o be_v place_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n unto_o which_o every_o faithful_a and_o pious_a understanding_n must_v be_v subject_a what_o be_v this_o why_o do_v you_o not_o name_v it_o because_o you_o dare_v not_o set_v down_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o precede_v which_o make_v clear_o against_o you_o to_o wit_v these_o etc._n these_o excellentia_fw-la canonical_a authoritatis_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la apoâstolorun_n confirmata_fw-la temporibus_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_n episcoporun_n &_o propagationes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la quadam_fw-la sublimiter_n constituta_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n confirm_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o propagation_n of_o church_n place_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n etc._n etc._n how_o direct_o be_v this_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n against_o that_o which_o you_o will_v prove_v thereby_o how_o have_v tradition_n no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n if_o the_o scripture_n by_o successive_a tradition_n of_o bishop_n hand_n so_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v get_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o high_a seat_n of_o divine_a authority_n to_o be_v honour_v as_o god_n word_n unto_o which_o every_o man_n must_v yield_v if_o this_o successive_a tradition_n on_o which_o as_o s._n augustine_n teach_v our_o persuasion_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n depend_v be_v make_v weak_a &_o fallible_a by_o protestant_n how_o shall_v the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o keep_v her_o credit_n and_o authority_n in_o our_o faith_n very_o it_o can_v except_o christian_n will_v cease_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o on_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o hunt_v after_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a scripture_n by_o the_o send_v and_o smell_v of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v therein_o as_o you_o do_v likewise_o by_o addition_n of_o the_o particle_n only_o you_o falsify_v the_o say_n of_o lit_fw-fr of_o pag._n 95._o lin_v 31._o &_o in_o marg._n lit_fw-fr paschasius_fw-la for_o whereas_o he_o promittit_fw-la he_o paschas_fw-la in_o matth._n c._n 28._o cum_fw-la electis_fw-la semper_fw-la adfuturum_fw-la se_fw-la promittit_fw-la say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o his_o elect_n all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o cite_v he_o as_o say_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a more_o gross_o in_o the_o same_o place_n you_o falsify_v druthmarus_n for_o whereas_o matth._n whereas_o in_o cap._n 28._o matth._n he_o say_v christ_n be_v with_o the_o reprobate_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o godhead_n but_o with_o the_o elect_a in_o another_o manner_n you_o make_v he_o say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a contrary_a to_o his_o meaning_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o presence_n and_o perpetual_a assistance_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o unite_v unto_o his_o church_n &_o her_o pastor_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v but_o still_o teach_v all_o that_o he_o command_v but_o that_o presence_n whereof_o that_o text_n proper_o speak_v be_v not_o only_o afford_v unto_o the_o elect_n but_o unto_o wicked_a man_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o worthy_a communicant_n as_o yourself_o 14._o yourself_o pag._n 52._o lin_v 14._o affirm_v you_o 105._o you_o see_v pag._n 105._o rail_v bitter_o against_o the_o jesuit_n for_o prove_v that_o your_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o part_n thereof_o because_o you_o sever_v yourselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o do_v not_o join_v unto_o any_o preexistent_a christian_a society_n of_o pastor_n but_o apart_v yourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o this_o his_o argument_n you_o rail_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o a_o whole_a leaf_n pag._n 106._o and_o 107._o where_o thus_o you_o conclude_v your_o foul_a foliall_a inuective_n they_o since_o their_o synod_n of_o trent_n have_v proceed_v from_o evil_a to_o worse_o this_o worse_o the_o minister_n in_o proof_n of_o all_o this_o bring_v nothing_o only_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o name_v the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n be_v that_o do_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v that_o prove_v obscure_v and_o outface_v of_o truth_n have_v not_o the_o protestant_n then_o slay_v be_v traitor_n against_o their_o king_n be_v not_o the_o king_n inform_v of_o their_o plot_n to_o murdâr_v he_o his_o mother_n his_o brethren_n &_o the_o cheief_a of_o his_o noble_n if_o to_o prevent_v his_o own_o instant_a death_n the_o king_n do_v by_o martial_a law_n without_o juridical_a form_n proceed_v against_o know_a rebel_n iâ_n this_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o you_o may_v say_v it_o surpass_v all_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n of_o infidel_n what_o idle_a eloquence_n be_v this_o obscure_v &_o outface_v the_o truth_n with_o forgery_n and_o sophistry_n they_o have_v conspire_v against_o kingdom_n and_o state_n they_o have_v surpass_v profess_v infidel_n in_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n and_o whereas_o they_o expel_v we_o by_o excommunication_n and_o chase_v we_o away_o from_o they_o by_o persecution_n yet_o this_o roman_a advocate_n tax_v we_o with_o schism_n &_o apostasy_n never_o remember_v what_o 1._o what_o lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n long_o since_o deliver_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n be_v then_o commit_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n thus_o by_o long_o continue_v fierce_a bitter_a blast_n of_o false_a reproach_n you_o dirive_v your_o unwary_a reader_n upon_o the_o hide_a rock_n of_o a_o falsifyed_a sentence_n of_o s._n aug._n as_o though_o this_o most_o divine_a doctor_n have_v insinuate_v the_o lawfullnes_n of_o revolt_n &_o separation_n from_o all_o christian_a church_n what_o can_v be_v more_o false_a he_o dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n who_o have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v that_o caecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n &_o other_o catholic_n have_v give_v up_o the_o holy_a bibles_n to_o the_o fire_n s._n aug._n do_v convince_v they_o of_o schism_n two_o way_n first_o because_o this_o pretence_n be_v it_o true_a be_v not_o just_a for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o of_o begin_v a_o new_a distinct_a christian_a church_n these_o be_v his_o word_n etc._n word_n augustin_n ep_v 48._o ad_fw-la vincent_n fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la aliqui_fw-la iustam_fw-la causam_fw-la habeant_fw-la qua_fw-la communionem_fw-la svam_fw-la separent_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la orbis_n terrarum_fw-la eamîue_fw-la appellent_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la quòd_fw-la se_fw-la just_a ab_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la communione_fw-la separaverint_fw-la ibid._n nos_fw-la ideo_fw-la certi_fw-la sumus_fw-la neminem_fw-la se_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la iuââè_fw-la separare_fw-la potuisse_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v certain_a that_o none_o can_v just_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o it_o be_v no_o way_n possible_a that_o any_o shall_v have_v reason_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o term_v themselves_o the_o church_n because_o upon_o just_a cause_n they_o have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n of_o all_o nation_n thus_o s._n aug._n what_o can_v be_v more_o direct_a against_o that_o doctrine_n for_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o or_o more_o efficacious_a to_o conclude_v that_o you_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a of_o damnable_a schism_n second_o say_v
s._n augustine_n the_o cause_n you_o donatist_n pretend_v be_v nulla_fw-la none_o at_o all_o it_o be_v a_o untruth_n 1._o untruth_n calumniarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la âumos_fw-la âactantes_fw-la d._n baptis_n l_o 5_o c_o 1._o caecilian_n have_v clear_v himself_o from_o that_o crime_n and_o be_v absolve_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o court_n yea_o though_o the_o same_o be_v true_a yet_o by_o separaverinâ_n by_o restat_fw-la uâ_n fateantur_fw-la nulla_fw-la malorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la cognitorum_fw-la tali_fw-la communione_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la maculari_fw-la ãâã_d cùm_fw-la fassi_fw-la fuerint_fw-la non_fw-la invenient_fw-la causam_fw-la cur_n se_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la separaverinâ_n your_o own_o principle_n it_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n wherefore_o your_o separation_n be_v not_o only_a schism_n but_o most_o eminent_a and_o notorious_a schism_n for_o than_o be_v separationis_fw-la apeââissimum_fw-la autem_fw-la sacrilegium_fw-la eminet_fw-la schismatis_fw-la cùm_fw-la nulla_fw-la fuit_fw-la causa_fw-la separationis_fw-la the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n most_o notorious_o eminent_a when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n he_o do_v not_o say_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n schism_n be_v commit_v as_o though_o there_o may_v be_v some_o just_a cause_n and_o then_o schism_n be_v not_o commit_v but_o when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o all_o which_o may_v with_o any_o colour_n or_o show_v be_v pretend_v for_o separation_n than_o schism_n be_v not_o only_o commit_v for_o it_o be_v still_o commit_v when_o separation_n be_v make_v from_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n what_o cause_n soever_o be_v pretend_v but_o then_o it_o be_v notorious_o &_o most_o evident_o commit_v behold_v how_o change_v the_o text_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o against_o justice_n cog_a into_o the_o same_o the_o word_n just_a you_o make_v his_o speech_n to_o have_v a_o sense_n just_a contrary_n to_o his_o meaning_n how_o just_o may_v i_o charge_v you_o with_o obscure_v &_o outface_v of_o the_o truth_n by_o forgery_n which_o calumnious_o without_o any_o proof_n you_o object_n unto_o the_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n but_o like_a to_o like_v such_o a_o religion_n such_o a_o advocate_n seven_o testimony_n of_o other_o father_n falsify_v §._o 2._o let_v we_o also_o discover_v some_o of_o your_o corruption_n about_o other_o father_n beside_o s._n augustine_n for_o the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n about_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n you_o cite_v these_o word_n of_o bapt._n of_o serm._n de_fw-fr bapt._n s._n cyprian_a christian_a religion_n find_v that_o from_o this_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o learning_n flow_v and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n do_v arise_v from_o this_o and_o be_v resolve_v into_o this_o these_o word_n puritan_n may_v better_v then_o you_o allege_v for_o their_o genevian_a principle_n that_o not_o only_a church-doctrine_n but_o also_o church-discipline_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n &_o prove_v by_o the_o clear_a text_n thereof_o but_o happy_o they_o never_o see_v it_o or_o if_o they_o do_v they_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o allege_v it_o as_o you_o do_v against_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n for_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a volume_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o of_o twelve_o or_o thirteen_o word_n thereof_o to_o wit_n this_o little_a sentence_n etc._n sentence_n praecipis_fw-la domine_fw-la ut_fw-la diligam_fw-la te_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr proximo_fw-la iubes_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la meam_fw-la eum_fw-la mensuram_fw-la complectar_fw-la etc._n etc._n legat_n hoc_fw-la unum_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o in_fw-la hoc_fw-la mandato_fw-la meditetur_fw-la christiana_n religio_fw-la &_o inveniet_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la scriptura_fw-la omnium_fw-la doctrinarum_fw-la regulas_fw-la emanasse_n etc._n etc._n love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n &_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o this_o will_v have_v appear_v have_v you_o not_o omit_v the_o word_n immediate_o precedent_a in_o the_o very_a same_o sentence_n let_v christian_a religion_n read_v this_o one_o word_n and_o meditate_v on_o this_o commandment_n and_o it_o shall_v find_v that_o from_o this_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o learning_n flow_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o example_n may_v serve_v to_o make_v evident_a to_o the_o eye_n your_o perpetual_a protestant_a impertinency_n in_o allege_v word_n of_o the_o father_n in_o which_o they_o commend_v the_o perfection_n &_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n for_o your_o fancy_n of_o only-only-on_o scripture_n for_o the_o father_n meaning_n be_v that_o all_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o a_o general_a and_o confuse_v manner_n not_o so_o particular_o and_o distinct_o as_o scripture_n may_v be_v the_o sole_a rule_n for_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v clear_a for_o what_o they_o say_v of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n they_o say_v of_o some_o principal_a particle_n thereof_o as_o of_o this_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n and_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o but_o no_o man_n that_o be_v in_o his_o judgement_n will_v say_v what_o this_o sole_a sentence_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n therefore_o their_o commendation_n of_o the_o plenitude_n of_o scripture_n can_v enforce_v no_o more_o then_o that_o all_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o some_o general_a manner_n not_o so_o particular_o but_o that_o for_o explication_n and_o distinction_n of_o many_o point_n the_o rule_n of_o church_n tradition_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n that_o unto_o they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v easy_a you_o 10_o you_o pag._n 45_o lin_v 10_o cite_v s._n dominum_fw-la s._n homil._n 2._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la isa._n vidi_n dominum_fw-la chrysostome_n scripture_n be_v not_o like_a metal_n which_o have_v need_n of_o workman_n to_o dig_v they_o out_o but_o they_o deliver_v a_o treasure_n ready_a at_o hand_n to_o they_o which_o seek_v hide_v riches_n in_o they_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o thou_o look_v into_o they_o etc._n etc._n here_o you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n by_o add_v unto_o it_o to_o dig_v they_o out_o whereby_o you_o make_v both_o the_o father_n to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o his_o speech_n to_o be_v senseless_a for_o if_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o text_n thereof_o as_o he_o say_v how_o be_v it_o a_o treasure_n ready_a at_o hand_n without_o dig_v or_o search_v how_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o look_v into_o the_o book_n to_o find_v it_o have_v you_o dig_v deep_o into_o the_o golden_a mine_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n you_o will_v perchance_o have_v find_v out_o his_o true_a meaning_n &_o not_o have_v impose_v upon_o he_o this_o false_a and_o pernicious_a doctrine_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o get_v gold_n out_o of_o mine_n do_v consider_v that_o a_o double_a labour_n be_v to_o be_v undergo_v the_o one_o to_o dig_v out_o that_o earth_n wherewith_o gold_n be_v mingle_v the_o other_o to_o sever_v the_o gold_n from_o the_o earth_n the_o first_o labour_n he_o say_v be_v necessary_a that_o we_o find_v out_o the_o treasure_n &_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v say_v percipere_fw-la say_v chrysost._n homil._n 40._o in_o joan._n fodere_fw-la nos_fw-la profundius_fw-la iubet_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la altè_fw-la delitescunt_fw-la invenire_fw-la possimus_fw-la idem_n in_o gen._n homil._n 37._o indagatis_fw-la profundis_fw-la verum_fw-la sensum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la percipere_fw-la he_o not_o only_o look_v into_o the_o book_n not_o only_o attend_v to_o the_o bare_a read_n but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o dig_v deep_o that_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o thing_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o bottom_n for_o we_o dig_v not_o for_o a_o thing_n that_o lie_v open_a and_o ready_a at_o hand_n but_o for_o a_o treasure_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o deep_a thus_o s._n chrysostome_n how_o direct_o against_o his_o mind_n do_v you_o make_v he_o say_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o treasure_n so_o ready_a at_o hand_n and_o obvious_a as_o we_o need_v not_o dig_v for_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o labour_n to_o wit_n of_o sever_a dross_n from_o gold_n when_o the_o same_o be_v find_v this_o labour_n s._n chrysost._n say_v be_v needless_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n in_o metallis_fw-la difficile_fw-la est_fw-la invenire_fw-la quod_fw-la venantur_fw-la etenim_fw-la cùm_fw-la metalla_fw-la terra_fw-la sint_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la terra_fw-la similitudo_fw-la celat_fw-la aspectum_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la quaeruntur_fw-la in_o scripture_n non_fw-la est_fw-la eadem_fw-la ratio_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la proponitur_fw-la aurum_fw-la terrae_fw-la commixtum_fw-la sed_fw-la aurum_fw-la purum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o mine_n say_v he_o man_n have_v difficulty_n to_o âind_v out_o what_o they_o hunt_v for_o the_o mine_n be_v earth_n and_o gold_n also_o earth_n this_o
likeness_n and_o similitude_n confound_v âhe_n sight_n not_o to_o discern_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o so_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v therein_o be_v not_o gold_n mingle_v with_o earth_n but_o pure_a gold_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_a silver_n refine_a wilth_z fire_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o metal_n that_o require_v workman_n to_o sever_v in_o their_o doctrine_n dross_n from_o gold_n they_o offer_v a_o ready_a and_o refine_a treasure_n to_o they_o that_o seek_v the_o riches_n hide_v in_o they_o thus_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o he_o do_v there_o large_o discourse_n how_o every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n even_o the_o chronology_n and_o proper_a name_n of_o man_n do_v afford_v wholesome_a and_o profitable_a doctrine_n to_o the_o reader_n but_o to_o find_v this_o treasure_n we_o must_v not_o as_o he_o there_o say_v nudam_fw-la tantùm_fw-la scripturam_fw-la aspicere_fw-la sed_fw-la insistere_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la study_v repositas_fw-la scrutari_fw-la opes_fw-la not_o only_o look_v upon_o the_o scripture_n but_o insist_v &_o with_o study_n search_v out_o the_o riches_n hoard_v up_o therein_o have_v you_o not_o they_o notorious_o falsify_v the_o sense_n of_o his_o discourse_n by_o the_o insertion_n of_o word_n of_o your_o own_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o your_o protestant_a sole-sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n you_o cite_v saepe_fw-la cite_v pag._n 50._o in_o marg._n lit_fw-fr e._n &_o pag._n 3._o lin_v 6._o &_o in_o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr e._n &_o alibi_fw-la saepe_fw-la this_o sentence_n of_o durand_n term_v he_o a_o famous_a scholeman_n ecclesia_fw-la licèt_fw-la dei_fw-la dominationem_fw-la habeat_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la illa_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la excedit_fw-la limitationem_fw-la scripturae_fw-la although_o the_o church_n have_v the_o power_n &_o authority_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n yet_o that_o authority_n do_v not_o exceed_v the_o limitation_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o place_n be_v by_o you_o allege_v many_o time_n in_o this_o your_o reply_n but_o most_o impertinent_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o church_n though_o it_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n caelis_fw-la earth_n matth._n 16._o v_o 20._o quicquid_fw-la solueris_fw-la quicquid_fw-la ligaveris_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la erit_fw-la solutum_fw-la &_o ligatum_fw-la in_o caelis_fw-la yet_o the_o same_o power_n be_v in_o some_o case_n restrain_v and_o limit_v by_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o church_n can_v dispense_v in_o many_o thing_n wherein_o god_n may_v dispense_v in_o infideles_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la licèt_fw-la habeat_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o tertio_fw-la illa_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la excedit_fw-la limitationem_fw-la scripturae_fw-la scriptura_fw-la autem_fw-la docet_fw-la express_v seruos_fw-la conversos_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la adhuc_fw-la manere_fw-la dominis_n suis_fw-la prioribus_fw-la licet_fw-la illi_fw-la maneant_fw-la infideles_fw-la particular_a she_o can_v say_v he_o exempt_a slave_n that_o be_v make_v christian_n from_o their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o old_a maâsters_n because_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o teach_v that_o slave_n convert_v unto_o the_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v still_o subject_a to_o their_o former_a master_n though_o their_o master_n be_v infidel_n thus_o durand_n now_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o prove_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n except_o according_a to_o your_o skill_n in_o logic_n you_o will_v argue_v in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n can_v do_v the_o thing_n forbid_v she_o in_o scripture_n because_o her_o power_n be_v not_o beyond_o the_o restraynt_n thereof_o give_v in_o the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la she_o can_v believe_v &_o teach_v doctrine_n propose_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n commend_v unto_o she_o in_o scripture_n hold_v the_o tradition_n you_o have_v whether_o by_o speech_n or_o by_o epistle_n 2._o thessaly_n 2.15_o how_o many_o time_n in_o this_o your_o reply_n have_v you_o cite_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n f._n sentence_n lombard_n l._n 4._o scent_n d._n 18._o light_v f._n god_n do_v not_o still_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o sometime_o through_o ignorance_n and_o surreption_n judge_v not_o according_a to_o truth_n this_o i_o say_v you_o cite_v alibi_fw-la cite_v see_v pag._n 89._o in_o lit_fw-fr â_o &_o p._n 93._o light_v d_o &_o alibi_fw-la to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n at_o the_o least_o about_o secondary_a article_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o evident_a that_o he_o speakerh_fw-mi of_o judgement_n in_o criminal_a cause_n for_o hence_o he_o inferretth_v iudicat_fw-la inferretth_v soluere_fw-la noxios_fw-la vel_fw-la damnare_fw-la se_fw-la putant_fw-la innoxios_fw-la cùm_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la non_fw-la sententia_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la sed_fw-la reorum_fw-la vita_fw-la queratur_fw-la et_fw-la ita_fw-la apertè_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la semper_fw-la sequitur_fw-la deus_fw-la iudicium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la ignorantiam_fw-la &_o surreptionem_fw-la interdum_fw-la iudicat_fw-la the_o churchman_n must_v not_o think_v because_o christ_n say_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o you_o bound_v or_o loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v &_o loose_v in_o heaven_n that_o therefore_o they_o may_v condemn_v the_o innocent_a and_o absolve_v the_o nocent_a for_o god_n in_o such_o case_n do_v not_o follow_v their_o sentence_n but_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o accuse_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v not_o ancient_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o say_v pag._n 161._o lin_v 15._o pope_n stephen_n be_v slight_v by_o s._n cyprian_a and_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v in_o your_o margin_n d._n margin_n ibid._n lit_fw-fr d._n these_o word_n of_o firmilian_a 75._o firmilian_a firmil_n apud_fw-la cyprian_n epist_n 75._o atque_fw-la ego_fw-la in_o âac_fw-la parte_fw-la just_a indignor_fw-la in_o tam_fw-la manifestam_fw-la &_o apertam_fw-la steâhani_fw-la stultitiam_fw-la quòd_fw-la qui_fw-la sic_fw-la de_fw-fr episcopatus_fw-la svi_fw-la loco_fw-la gloriaâur_fw-la &_o se_fw-la successionem_fw-la petri_n tenere_fw-la contendit_fw-la and_o indeed_o i_o be_o just_o grieve_v against_o the_o open_a &_o manifest_a folây_n of_o stephen_n that_o he_o so_o much_o glori_v of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o bishopric_n and_o stand_v upon_o his_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o peter_n thus_o you_o now_o behold_v your_o falsehood_n for_o i_o omit_v your_o ignorance_n in_o name_v firmiâian_n as_o a_o bishop_n of_o africa_n whereas_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n âf_o the_o east_n to_o wit_n of_o episcopus_fw-la of_o euseb._n hist._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 20._o caesareae_n capadocensis_n episcopus_fw-la caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n your_o legier-de-maine_a i_o say_v and_o falsehood_n be_v twofold_a first_o you_o omit_v to_o let_v your_o reader_n know_v that_o this_o firmilian_a when_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n be_v a_o quartaâeciman_n and_o also_o addict_v to_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptiâing_v they_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n and_o because_o s._n stephen_n a_o most_o 9_o most_o vincent_n lyrinensis_n adversus_fw-la haeres_fw-la cap._n 9_o holy_a pope_n &_o martyr_n have_v make_v a_o decree_n against_o their_o novelty_n 74._o novelty_n cyprian_a epist_n 74._o nihil_fw-la innovamdum_fw-la praeâerquam_fw-la quod_fw-la traditum_fw-la let_v no_o novelty_n be_v admit_v âut_v let_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n be_v keep_v this_o firmilian_a write_v against_o he_o a_o epistle_n full_a of_o sharp_a &_o contumelious_a speech_n have_v you_o mention_v this_o quality_n of_o firmilian_a which_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o know_v your_o impertinency_n will_v have_v be_v apparent_a for_o this_o suppose_a your_o argument_n go_v thus_o some_o bishop_n special_o firmilian_a err_v against_o faith_n and_o blast_v for_o the_o time_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n write_v a_o contemptuous_a epistle_n against_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n ergo_fw-la the_o sea_n of_o peter_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a institution_n the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n all_o heresye_n shall_v rage_n but_o never_o prevail_v second_o you_o notorious_o falsify_v the_o sentence_n of_o firmilian_a in_o make_v he_o to_o rail_v against_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n for_o this_o even_o in_o that_o his_o heretical_a passion_n whereof_o he_o afterward_o be_v 7._o be_v this_o be_v testify_v by_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n who_o then_o live_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o xistus_fw-la the_o successor_n of_o s._n stephen_n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 7._o histor._n c._n 3._o &_o niceph_n l._n 6._o c_o 7._o penitent_a he_o never_o do_v yea_o he_o do_v rather_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a bishop_n succession_n from_o peter_n and_o thence_o argue_v that_o see_v to_o peter_n only_o christ_n say_v to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n
will_v blush_v to_o confirm_v your_o slander_n with_o such_o silly_a and_o ridiculous_a proof_n other_o father_n impudent_o falsify_v as_o if_o they_o do_v deny_v what_o they_o do_v most_o constant_o maintain_v and_o prove_v §._o 4._o you_o be_v so_o bold_a in_o your_o falsehood_n as_o you_o dare_v cite_v the_o father_n for_o your_o fancy_n where_o ex_fw-la professo_fw-la even_o of_o purpose_n they_o dispute_v against_o it_o and_o prove_v the_o contrary_n pag_n 85_o lin_v 26._o you_o say_v the_o gift_n of_o do_v miracle_n be_v never_o promise_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o be_v long_o since_o cease_v augustin_n retract_v l._n 1._o c._n 13._o now_o s._n augustine_n do_v in_o that_o place_n say_v and_o prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o though_o miracle_n be_v not_o now_o ordinary_o annex_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o miracle_n be_v do_v and_o frequent_o do_v so_o that_o they_o be_v for_o multitude_n innumerable_a i_o never_o mean_v say_v 13._o say_v august_n lib._n 1._o retract_v c._n 13._o he_o as_o though_o that_o now_o no_o miracle_n be_v do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o in_o milan_n a_o blindman_n receive_v his_o sight_n at_o the_o shrine_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o sundry_a the_o like_a miracle_n myself_o do_v even_o then_o know_v to_o have_v be_v do_v in_o which_o kind_n so_o many_o be_v wrought_v in_o this_o our_o age_n as_o we_o neither_o know_v they_o all_o nor_o can_v number_v they_o we_o know_v how_o dare_v you_o name_v this_o testimony_n to_o prove_v miracle_n to_o be_v cease_v also_o that_o miracle_n can_v be_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o i_o the_o si_fw-mi non_fw-la opera_fw-la in_o eye_n fecissem_fw-la quae_fw-la nemo_fw-la alius_fw-la fecit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la non_fw-la haberent_fw-la joan._n 15._o â4_n &_o 5.20_o ego_fw-la habeo_fw-la testimonium_fw-la maius_fw-la joanne_n opera_fw-la enim_fw-la quae_fw-la dedit_fw-la mihi_fw-la pater_fw-la ut_fw-la faciam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la testimonium_fw-la perhibent_fw-la de_fw-la i_o scripture_n term_v they_o you_o 24._o you_o pag._n 112._o lin_v 24._o cite_v suarez_n the_o jesuit_n 3._o jesuit_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la catholica_fw-la contra_fw-la sect._n anglican_n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o §._o 3._o say_v haec_fw-la adulterari_fw-la possunt_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la exteriùs_fw-la fingi_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la necessaria_fw-la signa_fw-la verae_fw-la fidei_fw-la miracle_n may_v so_o be_v adulterare_v and_o external_o falsify_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v necessary_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n thus_o you_o cite_v suarez_n but_o how_o gross_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o suarez_n but_o word_n speak_v by_o way_n of_o objection_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o protestant_n for_o their_o paradox_n that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v then_o your_o argument_n in_o suarez_n without_o faith_n the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o subsist_v but_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a external_a &_o visible_a sign_n of_o true_a faith_n see_v even_o miracle_n themselves_o may_v be_v forge_v and_o counterfeit_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n can_v be_v assure_o know_v by_o visible_a mark_n suarez_n have_v urge_v this_o argument_n with_o other_o large_o he_o say_v 8._o say_v ibid._n §_o 8._o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a and_o to_o the_o argument_n about_o miracle_n credentium_fw-la miracle_n ibid._n c._n 8._o §._o 9_o non_fw-la ad_fw-la cognoscendam_fw-la singulorum_fw-la credentium_fw-la fidem_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la cognoscendam_fw-la congregationem_fw-la verè_fw-la credentium_fw-la he_o say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a token_n of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o person_n that_o do_v they_o yet_o they_o be_v sufficient_a sign_n to_o prove_v that_o true_a faith_n &_o sanctify_v be_v in_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v do_v so_o that_o what_o suarez_n the_o jesuit_n set_v down_o out_o of_o protestant_n as_o to_o be_v by_o he_o refell_v you_o produce_v as_o the_o assertion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o suarez_n if_o you_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v severe_o punish_v those_o that_o deceive_v soul_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o forgery_n and_o fraud_n i_o wonder_v how_o you_o do_v not_o fear_v to_o cite_v a_o cite_v pag._n 160._o lin_v ult._n &_o in_o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr a_o s._n chrysostome_n homil._n 3._o upon_o the_o act_n as_o affirm_v that_o no_o monarchical_a and_o supereminent_a action_n be_v exercise_v by_o s._n peter_n no_o vassalage_n or_o subjection_n yield_v he_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o your_o margin_n you_o cite_v these_o word_n his_o petrus_n egit_fw-la omne_fw-la ex_fw-la communi_fw-la discipulorum_fw-la sententia_fw-la nihil_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la nihil_fw-la cum_fw-la imperio_fw-la peter_n do_v all_o thing_n by_o common_a advice_n of_o the_o disciple_n nothing_o by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o command_n thus_o you_o cite_v s._n chrysostome_n now_o see_v your_o falsehood_n he_o say_v not_o as_o you_o cite_v he_o universal_o peter_n never_o do_v any_o thing_n by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o command_n but_o speak_v of_o the_o election_n of_o s._n mathias_n he_o say_v that_o in_o this_o business_n he_o do_v all_o by_o common_a advice_n not_o by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o then_o add_v present_o that_o this_o not_o use_v authority_n be_v wisdom_n and_o modesty_n not_o want_n of_o authority_n in_o peter_n behold_v his_o word_n so_o pregnant_a for_o peter_n monarchy_n as_o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o full_o why_o do_v he_o peter_n communicate_v this_o business_n with_o they_o videretur_fw-la they_o quid_fw-la an_fw-mi non_fw-la licebat_fw-la ipse_fw-la eligere_fw-la licebat_fw-la &_o quidem_fw-la maximè_fw-la verumtamen_fw-la non_fw-la id_fw-la fecit_fw-la ne_fw-la cviquam_fw-la gratificari_fw-la videretur_fw-la what_o have_v he_o not_o power_n to_o make_v the_o election_n himself_o he_o may_v very_o have_v do_v it_o alone_o without_o any_o question_n but_o he_o do_v not_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v think_v partial_a to_o some_o one_o have_v he_o choose_v he_o by_o this_o sole_a authority_n and_o again_o this_o be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o foresight_n of_o this_o doctor_n he_o say_v not_o we_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v and_o although_o he_o have_v right_a to_o appoint_v a_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o have_v that_o be_v he_o can_v alone_o have_v do_v as_o much_o as_o together_o with_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o eminent_a power_n yet_o this_o do_v it_o with_o advice_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o man_n and_o because_o eminency_n in_o spiritual_a power_n be_v not_o a_o honour_n but_o care_n of_o subject_n yet_o worthy_o âuoâ_n worthy_o meritò_fw-la primus_fw-la omnium_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la usurpat_fw-la in_o negotio_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la omneâ_n habebat_fw-la in_o manu_fw-la ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la christus_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la conversus_fw-la confirm_v fratres_n âuoâ_n do_v he_o first_o before_o they_o all_o exercise_n authority_n in_o the_o business_n who_o have_v all_o the_o rest_n at_o his_o disposition_n and_o will_n for_o this_o be_v he_o unto_o who_o our_o lord_n say_v thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n thus_o s._n chrysostome_n can_v any_o thing_n âe_v devise_v more_o full_a to_o show_v that_o peter_n have_v and_o do_v exercise_v monarchical_a authority_n special_o see_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o that_o very_a place_n say_v further_a upon_o the_o word_n peter_n rise_v up_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o disciple_n say_v princeps_fw-la say_v quomodo_fw-la cognoscit_fw-la creditum_fw-la sibi_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la gregem_fw-la quam_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la choro_fw-la est_fw-la princeps_fw-la behold_v how_o fervent_a be_v peter_n how_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v ând_a overuiew_n the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n how_o do_v he_o show_v himself_o prince_n &_o primate_n âf_o this_o quire_n behold_v likewise_o the_o modesty_n of_o james_n he_o âad_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o he_o speak_v nothing_o consider_v also_o the_o singular_a modesty_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n disceptantes_fw-la apostle_n quo_fw-la pacto_fw-la concedunt_fw-la ei_fw-la solium_fw-la non_fw-la ampliùs_fw-la disceptantes_fw-la how_o they_o yield_v the_o throne_n of_o primacy_n ânto_fw-mi he_o not_o strive_v for_o it_o among_o themselves_o as_o they_o âad_v former_o do_v thus_o s._n chrysostome_n which_o thing_n âre_n so_o clear_a for_o peter_n exercise_v monarchical_a priâacy_n and_o for_o the_o apostle_n yield_v vassalage_n unto_o âim_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_v you_o can_v not_o cite_v this_o place_n âut_v against_o your_o conscience_n know_v you_o do_v but_o delude_v soul_n in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n against_o the_o âruth_n gross_a imputation_n with_o manifest_a falsehood_n impute_v unto_o card._n baronius_n §._o 5._o what_o impudence_n it_o be_v for_o you_o to_o write_v as_o you_o do_v pag._n 114._o lin_v 14._o
doctrine_n &_o matter_n and_o of_o thing_n believe_v what_o be_v divine_a faith_n but_o to_o believe_v thing_n we_o do_v videntur_fw-la do_v argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la hebr._n 11.1_o fide_fw-la credimus_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la videmus_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr l._n 12._o c._n 31._o et_fw-la enchirid._n c._n 8._o fides_n quam_fw-la divina_fw-la eloquia_fw-la docent_fw-la est_fw-la earum_fw-la rerum_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la videntur_fw-la not_o see_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v they_o who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n so_o that_o howsoever_o some_o learned_a man_n may_v otherwise_o see_v some_o doctrine_n reveal_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n yet_o never_o by_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n for_o faith_n be_v that_o virtue_n whereby_o we_o operandi_fw-la we_o fides_n inchoat_fw-la meritum_fw-la aug._n l._n 1._o retrac_fw-la c._n 23._o et_fw-fr epist_n 106._o fides_n meretur_fw-la gratiam_fw-la bene_fw-la operandi_fw-la merit_v and_o please_v god_n by_o show_v reverence_n to_o his_o word_n but_o what_o merit_n or_o god-have-mercy_o be_v it_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o see_v manifest_o meritum_fw-la manifest_o augustin_n tract_n 79._o in_o joan._n laus_fw-la fidei_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la quod_fw-la creditur_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la &_o gregor_n hom_n 26._o in_o euang._n cyprian_n serm._n de_fw-fr natiu_fw-la christi_fw-la haec_fw-la fides_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la meritum_fw-la convict_v by_o the_o evidence_n thereof_o what_o pious_a affection_n to_o god_n word_n do_v a_o man_n show_v by_o see_v it_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o three_o argument_n three_o it_o be_v extreme_a disorder_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v est_fw-la say_v august_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 14._o priâs_fw-la videre_fw-la velle_fw-la ut_fw-la animum_fw-la purge_n perversum_fw-la atque_fw-la prae_fw-la posterum_fw-la est_fw-la first_o to_o see_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v whereas_o we_o ought_v first_o firm_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o so_o we_o may_v divine_a may_v see_v this_o minister_n reply_n pag._n 16._o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v divine_a merit_v to_o see_v what_o we_o have_v believe_v but_o protestant_n pretend_v first_o to_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o scripture_n doctrine_n thence_o conclude_v divine_a conclude_v see_v this_o minister_n reply_n pag._n 16._o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v divine_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o high_a and_o divine_a truth_n as_o they_o forsooth_o see_v it_o to_o be_v can_v but_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o if_o 19_o if_o if_o divine_a then_o apostolical_a reply_v pag._n 19_o reveal_v of_o god_n then_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o full_a public_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o subsequent_a age_n history_n age_n pag._n 105._o the_o minister_n say_v if_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v we_o maintain_v the_o religion_n which_o the_o holy_a apostle_n teach_v this_o alone_a be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o we_o can_v not_o nominate_v any_o visible_a church_n of_o our_o religion_n out_o of_o history_n though_o the_o preacher_n &_o professor_n thereof_o be_v never_o see_v nor_o can_v be_v name_v thus_o disorderly_o they_o place_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n they_o know_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v supernatural_a truth_n before_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v either_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o god_n the_o four_o argument_n four_o it_o be_v great_a blindenes_n and_o frantic_a and_o field_n appendix_n part_n 2._o pag._n 20._o do_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o who_o see_v not_o this_o light_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o pretend_v it_o must_v be_v brain_n sick_a and_o frantic_a want_v of_o common_a sense_n for_o man_n that_o digladiate_a among_o themselves_o about_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o which_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a and_o which_o not_o to_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v enable_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o discern_v heavenly_a writing_n doctrine_n and_o sense_n from_o humane_a by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o easy_o as_o man_n distinguish_v light_a from_o darkness_n honey_n from_o gall_n protestant_n disagree_v and_o contend_v bitter_o about_o the_o very_a scripture_n they_o daily_o peruse_v see_v and_o behold_v which_o text_n and_o sense_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a which_o not_o as_o to_o omit_v many_o other_o example_n about_o apocryphal_a about_o luther_n praefat_fw-la in_o epist._n jacobi_fw-la edit_fw-la jenensi_fw-la chemnitius_n enchyrid_a pag._n 63._o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n the_o second_o of_o peter_n the_o second_o and_o three_o of_o john_n the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n the_o apocalyps_n of_o john_n be_v apocryphal_a the_o epistle_n of_o james_n and_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o yet_o they_o amarae_fw-la they_o john_n white_a say_v they_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a by_o their_o own_o light_n shine_v and_o by_o their_o own_o show_v itself_o in_o they_o as_o sweetness_n be_v know_v by_o it_o own_o taste_n caluin_n lib._n 1._o institut_fw-la c._n 7._o §._o 2._o in_o fine_a non_fw-la obscuriorem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la suae_fw-la seipsum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la ultâò_fw-la praese_n fert_fw-la quà m_fw-la coloris_fw-la suire_v albae_fw-la &_o nigrae_fw-la saporis_fw-la res_fw-la suave_n &_o amarae_fw-la challenge_v resolution_n in_o these_o matter_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n make_v they_o to_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o to_o discern_v true_a scripture_n in_o text_n and_o sense_n from_o false_a as_o easy_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o darkness_n what_o can_v be_v more_o fond_a and_o ridiculous_a the_o five_o argument_n five_o if_o no_o man_n be_v save_v without_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n and_o if_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v resolve_v not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n what_o hope_v of_o salvation_n can_v wise_a and_o prudent_a man_n expect_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n without_o divine_a illumination_n make_v they_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v they_o can_v have_v supernatural_a faith_n nor_o be_v save_v if_o protestant_n say_v true_a wise_a &_o prudent_a man_n can_v be_v so_o fond_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o believe_v by_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o like_a article_n believe_v what_o church_n what_o protestant_n be_v force_v by_o this_o argument_n to_o contradict_v themselves_o for_o sometime_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n build_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o human_a and_o acquisite_a not_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n thus_o our_o minister_n pag._n 14._o and_o yet_o at_o other_o time_n they_o teach_v that_o novice_n and_o weakling_n have_v faith_n sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n who_o say_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o also_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 22._o saying_n novice_n in_o faith_n ground_n their_o historical_a faith_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n then_o can_v they_o expect_v but_o most_o certain_a damnation_n in_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o this_o protestant_a way_n to_o resolve_v supernatural_a faith_n be_v the_o truth_n the_o sixth_o argument_n final_o no_o devise_n more_o proper_a of_o satan_n to_o entrap_v simple_a soul_n than_o the_o promise_n of_o clear_a and_o manifest_a truth_n this_o be_v the_o very_a 11.3_o very_a timeo_fw-la ne_fw-la sicut_fw-la serpens_fw-la hevam_fw-la seduxit_fw-la astutiâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la ita_fw-la corrumpantur_fw-la sensus_fw-la vestri_fw-la &_o excidant_fw-la simplicitate_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o christo._n 2._o cor._n 11.3_o mean_n of_o delusion_n whereby_o he_o deceyve_v our_o first_o parent_n eve_n and_o 3.4_o and_o gen._n 3.4_o win_v she_o to_o taste_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n for_o what_o more_o grateful_a unto_o man_n that_o groan_v under_o the_o potest_fw-la the_o augustin_n de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 9_o vera_fw-la religio_fw-la sine_fw-la quodam_fw-la gravi_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la imperio_fw-la iniri_fw-la rectè_fw-la nullo_n pacto_fw-la potest_fw-la yoke_n of_o christian_a authority_n press_v they_o to_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o see_v they_o this_o ibid._n this_o haeretici_fw-la non_fw-la se_fw-la iugum_fw-la credendi_fw-la imponere_fw-la sed_fw-la docendi_fw-la fontem_fw-la aperire_fw-la gloriantur_fw-la augustin_n ibid._n promise_n of_o heresy_n follow_v we_o &_o you_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o god_n see_v the_o truth_n you_o shall_v by_o follow_v we_o not_o dark_o believe_v but_o know_v good_a from_o bad_a truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o evidence_n &_o
because_o know_v by_o the_o church_n perpetual_a tradition_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a authority_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o god_n supreme_a verity_n who_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o part_n about_o the_o catholic_a resolution_n of_o faith_n no_o doubt_n but_o that_o to_o the_o end_n a_o man_n may_v believe_v divine_a inward_a illumination_n anoint_v his_o hart_n be_v necessary_a the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v the_o external_a infallible_a ground_n unto_o which_o divine_a inspiration_n move_v man_n to_o adhere_v that_o they_o may_v be_v settle_v in_o the_o true_a save_a faith_n the_o answer_n in_o few_o word_n be_v this_o the_o resolution_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v firm_o assure_v about_o four_o principle_n against_o four_o enemy_n by_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la prime_n and_o infinite_a verity_n that_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v this_o i_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o first_o principle_n prove_v §._o 1._o the_o first_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n be_v the_o pagan_a vivimus_fw-la pagan_a dicunt_fw-la pagani_fw-la benâ_n vivimus_fw-la or_o profane_a joan._n profane_a fuerunt_fw-la philosophi_fw-la de_fw-la virtutibus_fw-la &_o vitijs_fw-la sublimia_fw-la multa_fw-la tractantes_fw-la aug._n tract_n 45._o in_o joan._n philosopher_n who_o be_v persuade_v he_o may_v attain_v unto_o perfect_a felicity_n and_o sanctity_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o sole_a natural_a truth_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v that_o only_a which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o perfection_n which_o in_o the_o first_o place_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a &_o infinite_a verity_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o can_v lie_v nor_o reveal_v any_o untruth_n when_o he_o speak_v immediate_o himself_o by_o secret_a inspiration_n hence_o we_o thus_o resolve_v god_n the_o prime_a verity_n can_v reveal_v untruth_n special_o about_o the_o state-matter_n of_o salvation_n when_o he_o speak_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n immediate_o himself_o but_o he_o reveal_v in_o this_o manner_n by_o inspiration_n unto_o his_o prophet_n that_o man_n can_v serve_v he_o true_o nor_o be_v save_v without_o know_v supernatural_a truth_n beyond_o the_o reason_n the_o as_o man_n felicity_n the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n be_v above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n so_o it_o be_v convenient_a god_n shall_v bring_v he_o unto_o it_o by_o believe_a truth_n above_o the_o reach_n of_o his_o reason_n reach_n of_o reason_n which_o truth_n in_o particular_a he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v supernatural_a truth_n such_o as_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n and_o other_o who_o he_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o teach_v immediate_o by_o himself_o and_o send_v they_o to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o world_n this_o the_o prime_a and_o high_a principle_n of_o christian_a resolution_n protestant_n not_o in_o express_a word_n but_o in_o deed_n and_o by_o consequence_n reject_v from_o be_v the_o stay_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o as_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o aristotle_n last_o and_o final_o by_o the_o light_n and_o evidence_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o reason_n do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o aristotle_n nor_o upon_o his_o bare_a world_n even_o so_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o light_n &_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a truth_n as_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o do_v do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o author_n and_o doctor_n of_o scripture_n nor_o his_o bare_a mere_a &_o pure_a word_n this_o be_v most_o evident_a for_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o some_o doctor_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o another_o to_o believe_v his_o word_n through_o reverence_n unto_o his_o authority_n as_o know_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o word_n hence_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v so_o independent_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n as_o though_o god_n be_v not_o prime_a verity_n but_o fallible_a in_o his_o word_n yet_o their_o faith_n may_v subsist_v as_o now_o it_o do_v this_o be_v clear_a because_o let_v one_o be_v never_o so_o fallible_a and_o false_a yet_o when_o his_o say_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a we_o may_v yea_o we_o can_v but_o believe_v his_o word_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o but_o protestant_n pretend_v that_o the_o say_n of_o scripture_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o light_n &_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n believe_v therein_o &_o upon_o this_o resplendent_a verity_n they_o build_v last_o their_o faith_n therefore_o though_o god_n be_v fallible_a &_o may_v be_v false_a yet_o their_o faith_n that_o his_o scripture_n be_v truth_n which_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v subsist_v be_v this_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o depend_v not_o upon_o god_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o infallible_a verity_n which_o give_v no_o more_o credit_n unto_o god_n than_o man_n will_v give_v unto_o a_o liar_n to_o wit_n to_o believe_v he_o so_o far_o as_o they_o see_v he_o to_o credit_v the_o word_n of_o his_o teach_n so_o far_o as_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n very_o this_o form_n of_o faith_n resolution_n be_v gross_a and_o unchristian_a which_o i_o be_o persuade_v protestant_n will_v not_o maintain_v do_v they_o well_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v or_o can_v they_o find_v some_o other_o way_n of_o resolution_n whereby_o they_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o god_n without_o be_v bind_v to_o rely_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n demonstrate_v §._o 2._o some_z will_v say_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n by_o who_o word_n we_o can_v be_v deceive_v but_o how_o prouâ_n you_o these_o pretend_v divine_a revelation_n to_o be_v true_o such_o here_o come_v in_o the_o second_o enemy_n of_o true_a religion_n who_o follow_v his_o blind_a passion_n labour_v to_o deprive_v the_o world_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o divine_a revelation_n that_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o the_o sun_n this_o enemy_n be_v the_o jew_n who_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v supernatural_a truth_n reveal_v of_o god_n deny_v the_o reveal_v doctrine_n of_o god_n to_o be_v apostolical_a that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o second_o principle_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n be_v no_o other_o but_o apostolical_a that_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o second_o perfection_n of_o the_o prime_a verity_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v with_o his_o seal_n that_o be_v with_o miracle_n and_o work_n proper_a to_o himself_o warrant_v or_o subsigne_v falsehood_n devise_v or_o vent_v by_o any_o man_n hence_o we_o make_v this_o resolution_n god_n be_v infinite_a verity_n can_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n testify_v falsehood_n devise_v and_o vent_v by_o man_n god_n have_v by_o manifest_a miracle_n testify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o word_n and_o message_n ergo_fw-la the_o same_o be_v not_o a_o false_a religion_n invent_v of_o man_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n the_o miracle_n by_o which_o the_o prime_a verity_n have_v give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o four_o head_n first_o the_o miraculous_a prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n most_o clear_o &_o punctual_o fullfil_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o b._n mother_n his_o apostle_n his_o church_n second_o the_o miraculous_a work_n in_o all_o kind_n which_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o disciple_n have_v wrought_v which_o be_v so_o many_o so_o manifest_a so_o wonderful_a &_o above_o nature_n as_o we_o can_v desire_v great_a evidence_n three_o the_o miraculous_a conversion_n of_o the_o world_n by_o twelve_o poor_a unlearned_a fisherman_n the_o world_n i_o say_v which_o they_o be_v in_o the_o flower_n of_o human_a pride_n &_o glory_n in_o the_o height_n of_o human_a erudition_n and_o learning_n bring_v they_o to_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n seem_o absurd_a in_o reason_n to_o follow_v a_o course_n of_o discipline_n true_o repugnant_a unto_o sensuality_n to_o embrace_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n
to_o wit_n to_o be_v true_a to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v preach_v and_o deliver_v of_o the_o apostle_n the_o high_a ground_n by_o which_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o the_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o i_o be_o resolve_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v reveal_v be_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n jesus_n &_o his_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v the_o same_o as_o divine_a and_o sacred_a but_o the_o high_a ground_n that_o move_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v 5._o be_v the_o minister_n and_o especial_o the_o bishop_n chaplin_n pag._n 16._o &_o 17._o charge_n the_o answerer_n to_o resolve_v faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o only_a tradition_n this_o be_v a_o slander_n for_o he_o do_v distinguish_v express_o in_o scripture_n the_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n or_o his_o word_n this_o second_o property_n be_v spiritual_a and_o hide_a and_o believe_v not_o upon_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n direct_o but_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o affirm_v confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o to_o be_v preach_v and_o plant_v in_o the_o world_n be_v a_o public_a sensible_a thing_n &_o so_o be_v know_v by_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n thus_o the_o church_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a be_v build_v upon_o god_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n be_v build_v on_o the_o apostle_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n be_v build_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o pastor_n succeed_v they_o the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n by_o office_n as_o our_o minister_n grant_n pag._n 9_o lin_v 5._o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n that_o so_o teach_v i_o into_o this_o principle_n 5._o principle_n aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z cap._n 5._o saint_n augustine_n resolve_v his_o faith_n against_o the_o manichee_n who_o pretend_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v be_v corrupt_v confute_v they_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n do_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n induce_v he_o assign_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o his_o resolution_n in_o this_o point_n for_o though_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v soveraigne_o certain_a and_o true_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o as_o sacred_a preach_v it_o yet_o that_o this_o gospel_n as_o we_o have_v it_o come_v incorrupt_a from_o the_o apostle_n he_o can_v have_v no_o strong_a or_o more_o scripture_n more_o the_o minister_n force_v by_o this_o testimony_n grant_v two_o thing_n which_o overthrow_n his_o cause_n first_o pa._n 22._o l._n 13.14_o that_o novice_n and_o simple_a person_n ground_n their_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o field_n grant_v appendix_n part_n 1._o pag._n 11._o now_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o faith_n of_o novice_n be_v save_v faith_n as_o s._n aug._n there_o say_v contra_fw-la epist._n fundamenti_fw-la c._n 2._o and_o consequent_o their_o faith_n be_v divine_a ergo_fw-la save_v &_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n second_o he_o grant_n pag._n 23._o lin_v 2._o &_o 3._o that_o the_o church_n as_o include_v the_o apostle_n can_v prove_v the_o scripture_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o principle_n know_v by_o themselves_o but_o have_v another_o high_a divine_a principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v prove_v the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o apostle_n be_v as_o protestant_n grant_v field_n l._n 4._o of_o church_n c._n 21._o of_o great_a authority_n than_o scripture_n excellent_a proof_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n descend_v by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n neither_o can_v we_o imagine_v a_o high_a except_o we_o fly_v to_o particular_a &_o private_a revelation_n which_o be_v absurd_a the_o second_o argument_n second_o i_o prove_v that_o common_a unlearned_a people_n the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v persuade_v about_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n by_o tradition_n not_o by_o scripture_n common_a &_o unlearned_a people_n have_v true_a christian_a faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n but_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n of_o all_o these_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n ground_v on_o scripture_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o understand_v nor_o read_v any_o scripture_n but_o translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n &_o so_o if_o they_o believe_v upon_o scrpture_n they_o believe_v upon_o scripture_n translate_v into_o their_o mother_n tongue_n but_o before_o that_o they_o can_v know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v even_o in_o all_o substantial_a point_n that_o so_o they_o may_v build_v on_o it_o they_o must_v first_o know_v what_o be_v the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n &_o translate_v &_o to_o this_o proof_n that_o christian_n believe_v their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o any_o translation_n the_o minister_n have_v not_o answer_v one_o word_n nor_o can_v answer_v for_o it_o be_v convince_a as_o appear_v by_o this_o syllogism_n persuasion_n more_o certain_a and_o firm_a can_v be_v ground_v on_o persuasion_n less_o firm_a and_o certain_a such_o as_o be_v true_a christian_n believe_v the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o they_o do_v that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v into_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n ergo_fw-la true_a christian_n do_v not_o build_v their_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n on_o scripture_n translate_v but_o on_o doctrine_n know_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n former_o and_o more_o firm_o than_o that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v firm_o believe_v they_o so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n translate_v against_o they_o for_o if_o they_o know_v they_o not_o before_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o scripture_n in_o place_n that_o concern_v they_o be_v true_o translate_v if_o they_o do_v not_o before_o hand_n firm_o believe_v they_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o allow_v translation_n that_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o to_o reject_v the_o translation_n that_o differ_v from_o they_o ergo_fw-la believe_v ergo_fw-la the_o minister_n pag._n 26._o say_v that_o ignorant_a man_n resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o scripture_n yet_o not_o into_o scripture_n so_o distinct_o know_v as_o they_o can_v tell_v the_o name_n of_o the_o several_a book_n author_n and_o section_n and_o so_o they_o resolve_v implicit_o not_o explicit_o this_o be_v idle_a for_o if_o they_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v write_v though_o they_o know_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n nor_o number_n of_o the_o chapter_n &_o verse_n nor_o the_o formal_a text_n what_o ground_n firm_a they_o their_o creed_n have_v they_o this_o to_o believe_v original_o &_o before_o they_o know_v any_o scripture_n they_o have_v faith_n ground_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o they_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o translation_n about_o such_o substantial_a point_n as_o they_o firm_o believe_v by_o tradition_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o protestant_n must_v mean_v if_o they_o have_v any_o true_a meaning_n when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o common_a people_n know_v scripture_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v by_o the_o translate_v the_o the_o minister_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v to_o a_o find_a paradox_n confute_v already_o that_o unlearned_a rustic_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n and_o by_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n pag._n 28._o lin_v 3._o he_o add_v lin_v 7._o that_o they_o which_o actual_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v virtual_o &_o mediate_o resolve_v the_o same_o into_o the_o very_a scripture_n though_o they_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o scripture_n this_o be_v frivolous_a and_o false_a for_o the_o pagan_a and_o infidel_n that_o know_v honey_n to_o be_v sweet_a and_o take_v in_o abundance_n to_o be_v hurtful_a shall_v virtual_o resolve_v their_o persuasion_n into_o the_o very_a scripture_n because_o they_o actual_o believe_v a_o thing_n affirm_v in_o scripture_n prou._n 25._o 27._o yea_o the_o jew_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v believe_v a_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v he_o therefore_o resolve_v and_o build_v virtual_o upon_o scripture_n no._n that_o one_o build_v on_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o
of_o waldo_n wickliff_n and_o husse_n fabulae_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o be_v fable_n you_o turn_v as_o by_o he_o speak_v of_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n the_o pharisee_n do_v indeed_o corrupt_a scripture_n but_o how_o by_o logical_a deduction_n out_o of_o the_o same_o according_a to_o your_o protestant_a and_o the_o common_a heretical_a fashion_n pretend_v great_a skill_n than_o all_o their_o ancestor_n that_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o their_o special_a observation_n be_v tradition_n unwritten_a from_o moses_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o word_n yea_o the_o thing_n they_o most_o of_o all_o object_v against_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o write_a tradition_n of_o moses_n about_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n joan._n 7._o from_o which_o precept_n not_o by_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o by_o logical_a inference_n they_o conclude_v that_o our_o lord_n break_v the_o sabboth-day_n by_o heal_a disease_a person_n thereon_o so_o that_o pharasaicall_a tradition_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n unwritten_a as_o you_o imagine_v but_o to_o be_v doctrine_n conclude_v from_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o logic_n just_a according_a to_o your_o protestant_a pretence_n also_o what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n tradition_n unwritten_a be_v not_o our_o doctrine_n but_o you_o be_v speak_v because_o you_o will_v have_v man_n so_o think_v though_o they_o err_v not_o because_o you_o can_v think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o in_o truth_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v against_o this_o your_o silly_a shift_n the_o father_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o word_n understand_v by_o tradition_n apostolical_a unwritten_a dogmata_fw-la quae_fw-la peti_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la è_fw-la sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o can_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o such_o certitude_n as_o they_o may_v thereupon_o be_v believe_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o you_o pretend_v and_o glory_n that_o all_o your_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripture_n petitae_fw-la so_o draw_v and_o gather_v from_o holy_a scripture_n as_o they_o be_v believe_v as_o faith_n only_o upon_o this_o rule_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v great_a vanity_n for_o you_o to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n by_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a understand_v the_o doctrine_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o of_o your_o protestant_a separation_n and_o if_o from_o generality_n upon_o which_o minister_n who_o drift_n be_v to_o deceyve_v do_v willing_o dwell_v we_o descend_v to_o particular_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o reject_v those_o doctrine_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o fabulous_a dream_n and_o human_a invention_n which_o the_o father_n express_o and_o in_o term_n affirm_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_a protestant_n esteem_v fabulous_a the_o pop._n the_o the_o chrys._n homil_n 69._o ad_fw-la pop._n father_n affirm_v it_o be_v ab_fw-la apostolis_n sancitum_fw-la ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o bind_n of_o the_o cleargyman_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o single_a life_n and_o from_o woo_v &_o wive_n do_v not_o protestant_n detest_v as_o impious_a 2._o impious_a impious_a council_n carthag_n can._n 2._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v haec_fw-la docuârunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la haec_fw-la seruavit_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v this_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a sin_n for_o votary_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o vow_n do_v not_o protestant_n contemn_v as_o a_o fabulous_a invention_n &_o yet_o 61._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 61._o the_o father_n say_v tradiderunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la dei_fw-la apostoli_fw-la this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o god_n the_o custom_n of_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o forehead_n protestant_n deride_v as_o foolish_a 27._o foolish_a foolish_a basil._n the_o spirit_n sanct._n c._n 27._o yet_o the_o father_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la patres_fw-la nostri_fw-la in_o silentio_fw-la sine_fw-la literis_fw-la it_o be_v teach_v by_o our_o father_n the_o apostle_n in_o silent_a tradition_n without_o writing_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n be_v it_o not_o in_o neglect_n and_o derision_n with_o protestant_n &_o yet_o the_o montan._n the_o the_o hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la marcell_n de_fw-fr erroribus_fw-la montan._n father_n say_v as_o we_o do_v quadragesiman_n semel_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n ieiunamus_fw-la we_o fast_o one_o lent_n a_o year_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o protestant_n also_o scorn_v the_o feast_n of_o ember-week_n four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o pentecost_n the_o the_o leo_fw-la de_fw-fr ieiunio_fw-la sexti_fw-la mensis_fw-la &_o serm._n 6._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n father_n say_v ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n seruantur_fw-la they_o be_v receyve_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o fast_o one_o friday_n or_o the_o sixth_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o memory_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n protestant_n condemn_v as_o superstitious_a yet_o 75._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 75._o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la decreverunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o apostle_n make_v this_o decree_n and_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n from_o they_o have_v perpetual_o observe_v it_o the_o make_n and_o bless_v of_o holy_a water_n do_v not_o protestant_n reject_v as_o magical_a yet_o the_o 27._o the_o the_o basil._n the_o spir_n san_fw-it c._n 27._o father_n say_v express_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o mingle_v water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v think_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v fabulous_a but_o by_o the_o father_n 3._o father_n father_n cyprian_a lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o dominica_n institutio_fw-la the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o tradition_n unwritten_a derive_v to_o us._n luther_n dare_v to_o cast_v off_o with_o a_o jest_n the_o commandment_n not_o to_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o fast_v that_o so_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v enter_v in_o at_o our_o mouth_n before_o other_o meat_n 6._o meat_n meat_n aug._n ep._n 118_o ad_fw-la januar_n c._n 6._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la placuit_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la christus_fw-la per_fw-la apostolos_fw-la disposuit_fw-la it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o by_o his_o inspiration_n the_o apostle_n do_v so_o appoint_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o regulam_fw-la of_o of_o aug._n lib._n 4._o in_o julian._n &_o leo_fw-la primus_fw-la ep._n 14._o exorcizandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la secundum_fw-la apostolican_n regulam_fw-la exorcism_n &_o exsufflation_n use_v in_o baptism_n the_o traditam_fw-la the_o the_o origen_n homil._n 5._o in_o num._n a_o magno_fw-la pontifice_fw-la christo_fw-la &_o eius_fw-la filiis_fw-la apostolis_n traditam_fw-la form_n of_o interrogation_n answer_n and_o other_o ceremony_n that_o instituit_fw-la that_o that_o fabian_n ep._n 2._o ad_fw-la oriental_n christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la they_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v afterward_o chrism_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o balm_n traditam_fw-la balm_n balm_n tertul._n li._n 1._o ad_fw-la ux_fw-la apostolica_fw-la praescriptio_fw-la epiphan_n haer_fw-mi 50._o propter_fw-la eminentiam_fw-la celebrationis_fw-la traditam_fw-la that_o they_o who_o have_v be_v marry_v more_o than_o once_o be_v not_o promote_v unto_o priesthood_n out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o that_o dignity_n voverant_fw-la dignity_n dignity_n aug._n lib._n 17._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 4._o hoc_fw-la votum_fw-la illi_fw-la potentissimi_fw-la voverant_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o vow_n of_o religion_n perfection_n that_o exordium_n that_o that_o chrys._n homil_n 17._o ad_fw-la paph_n antiochen_n a_o christo_fw-la introducta_fw-la casian_n coenobitarum_fw-la disciplina_fw-la tempore_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la sumpserat_fw-la exordium_n monastical_a profession_n begin_v by_o their_o institution_n colimus_fw-la institution_n institution_n tertul._n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la anniversarios_n dies_fw-la colimus_fw-la the_o keep_a festival_n day_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n decease_v 1._o decease_v decease_v council_n antioc_n apostol_n citat_fw-la in_o 7._o synod_n act_n 1._o the_o place_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n 7._o church_n church_n damascen_n orat_fw-la 4._o the_o imagine_v synod_n nicen_n 2._o act_n 7._o their_o worship_n mystagog_n worship_n worship_n aug._n serm._n 17._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n &_o cyril_n cathec_fw-la 5._o mystagog_n to_o commend_v ourselves_o unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n decease_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o mass_n these_o thing_n protestant_n detest_v as_o superstition_n all_o which_o yet_o the_o father_n maintain_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n metamorphize_v the_o word_n profitable_a as_o to_o make_v it_o signify_v the_o same_o with_o the_o word_n sufficient_a which_o be_v very_o hard_a yet_o be_v the_o text_n much_o over-short_a to_o prove_v their_o intent_n that_o scripture_n alone_o
be_v sufficient_a for_o every_o man_n see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o every_o man_n but_o express_o of_o he_o who_o be_v homo_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v one_o already_o full_o instruct_v and_o firm_o settle_v by_o tradition_n in_o all_o the_o main_n point_v of_o christian_a faith_n and_o godly_a life_n such_o a_o one_o as_o timothy_n be_v the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n aforetaught_a and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v it_o but_o this_o prove_v at_o the_o most_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n not_o of_o scripture_n alone_o or_o of_o onely-onely-one_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n book_n in_o great_a letter_n very_o earnest_o affirm_v hence_o also_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o 34.35.36_o the_o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v scripture_n be_v clear_a unto_o infidel_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n heap_n many_o testimony_n of_o father_n that_o teach_v scripture_n in_o some_o matter_n to_o be_v clear_a who_o deny_v this_o they_o be_v so_o to_o the_o faithful_a not_o unto_o infidel_n not_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v unsettle_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n yea_o many_o place_n he_o bring_v speak_v express_o only_a of_o the_o faithful_a &_o pious_a sicut_fw-la vera_fw-la religio_fw-la docet_fw-la accedunt_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o by_o he_o allege_v affirm_v and_o therefore_o be_v bring_v impertinent_o to_o prove_v the_o sufficiency_n &_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o infidel_n pag._n 34.35.36_o many_o allegation_n of_o father_n which_o protestant_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o all_o substantial_a point_n be_v impertinent_a because_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o man_n aforehand_o instruct_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n who_o may_v by_o the_o light_n of_o tradition_n easy_o discover_v they_o in_o scripture_n as_o they_o that_o hear_v aristotle_n explicate_v himself_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n may_v understand_v his_o book_n of_o nature_n most_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o never_o hear_v his_o explication_n either_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n or_o by_o tradition_n of_o his_o scholar_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o most_o learned_a majesty_n sufficient_o demonstrate_v this_o first_o ground_n of_o catholic_a faith_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o christian_a be_v original_o and_o fundamental_o build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o as_o write_v in_o scripture_n but_o as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n successive_o from_o the_o primitive_a upon_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v that_o both_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n thence_o further_o ascend_v &_o infer_v they_o come_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a veracity_n &_o author_n of_o truth_n the_o second_o ground_n that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o tradition_n man_n be_v to_o cleave_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a §._o 3._o this_o principle_n be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o former_a out_o of_o which_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v cler_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a apostle_n true_a the_o minister_n still_o come_v forth_o with_o his_o distinction_n that_o by_o church_n we_o may_v understand_v a_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n &_o they_o he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o church_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n second_o for_o a_o number_n of_o believer_n small_a or_o great_a teach_v and_o profess_v the_o right_n say_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n &_o then_o he_o grant_v there_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n this_o distinction_n so_o much_o repeat_v special_o pag._n 57_o and_o 58._o be_v impertinent_a for_o by_o church_n we_o understand_v not_o every_o small_a number_n of_o right_a believer_n but_o a_o christian_a multitude_n of_o such_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o upon_o her_o tradition_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a what_o scripture_n &_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n for_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o so_o we_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n and_o it_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v now_o whether_o this_o church_n be_v mitre_a or_o not_o mitre_a go_v in_o black_a or_o in_o white_a or_o in_o scarlet_a do_v little_a import_n let_v the_o minister_n but_o show_v we_o a_o church_n that_o have_v evident_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n &_o we_o will_v say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o she_o have_v no_o surplice_n or_o mitre_n but_o be_v as_o precise_a as_o geneva_n itself_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n who_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n can_v assure_v man_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o bear_v such_o spleen_n against_o a_o mitre_n or_o corner-cap_n or_o surplice_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o church_n that_o only_o have_v catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o man_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o god_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o age_n a_o church_n receive_v and_o deliver_v these_o tradition_n else_o man_n in_o some_o age_n since_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o the_o minister_n pa._n 59_o lin_v 15._o say_v a_o corrupt_a church_n may_v deliver_v uncorrupt_o some_o part_n of_o sacred_a truth_n as_o the_o scripture_n and_o creed_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v answer_n we_o may_v conceive_v two_o way_n of_o deliver_v a_o incorrupt_a text_n the_o one_o casual_a &_o by_o chance_n and_o so_o a_o corrupt_a church_n yea_o a_o jew_n a_o infidel_n a_o child_n may_v deliver_v a_o uncorrupt_a copy_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o other_o authentic_a assure_v the_o receiver_n this_o to_o be_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n of_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n and_o bind_v he_o so_o to_o believe_v this_o authentik_a and_o irrefragable_a tradition_n can_v be_v make_v by_o a_o false_a church_n err_v in_o her_o tradition_n as_o be_v clear_a now_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o man_n not_o only_o casual_o have_v the_o true_a scripture_n but_o must_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o text_n thereof_o be_v incorrupt_a therefore_o there_o must_v be_v still_o a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n who_o tradition_n be_v authentic_a that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n upon_o which_o man_n must_v believe_v doctrine_n to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o mean_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o christianity_n without_o assure_a faith_n whereof_o no_o man_n be_v save_v second_o this_o church_n must_v be_v always_o obstinate_a always_o the_o minister_n pag._n 61._o lin_v 15_o &_o lin_v 26._o object_n that_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v repute_v a_o impious_a sect_n by_o the_o multitude_n and_o so_o not_o be_v know_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o true_a and_o holy_a nor_o can_v her_o truth_n be_v discern_v by_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v four_o property_n of_o church-doctrin_n so_o likewise_o there_o be_v four_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o natural_a understanding_n both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n for_o god_n only_o &_o his_o bless_a see_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n true_o reveal_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n ordinary_o speak_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o almost_o all_o man_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v the_o apostle_n only_o and_o the_o prophet_n except_v the_o three_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o miraculous_a preach_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o first_o and_o primitive_a world_n but_o now_o be_v not_o the_o four_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n that_o be_v of_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o receive_v by_o full_a tradition_n and_o profession_n all_o the_o adversaries_n thereof_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o
christian_a divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o notorious_a changer_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a &_o sensible_a to_o all_o man_n even_o unto_o her_o very_a enemy_n for_o not_o only_a jew_n and_o infidel_n but_o even_o heretic_n know_v in_o their_o conscience_n and_o sometime_o acknowledge_v in_o word_n that_o the_o church_n be_v true_o catholic_a so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n they_o that_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n which_o religion_n be_v catholic_a may_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o common_a reason_n that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n clear_a by_o common_a discourse_n that_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n his_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v hide_v and_o the_o light_n thereof_o lose_v there_o be_v no_o ordinary_a mean_n leave_v for_o man_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v nor_o consequent_o what_o god_n by_o inspiration_n reveal_v unto_o they_o we_o must_v begin_v again_o anew_o from_o a_o second_o fountain_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n and_o build_v upon_o the_o new_a plant_n of_o religion_n with_o miracle_n in_o the_o world_n by_o some_o recent_a prophet_n and_o if_o this_o be_v absurd_a then_o there_o must_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o church_n who_o tradition_n be_v illustrious_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n unto_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v obstinate_a visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n must_v ever_o be_v famous_a glorious_a and_o most_o notorious_o know_v in_o the_o world_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v true_o say_v with_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a c._n 17._o i_o believe_v nothing_o but_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o country_n and_o most_o celebrious_a fame_n now_o if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v secret_a invisible_a in_o any_o age_n than_o her_o tradition_n can_v not_o be_v doctrine_n ever_o illustrious_o know_v but_o rather_o obscure_a hide_a apocryphal_a ergo_fw-la the_o church_n the_o mistress_n pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a which_o if_o need_v be_v may_v be_v further_o prove_v most_o evident_o three_o that_o this_o church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o that_o apparent_o descend_v from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n last_o bishop_n the_o church_n that_o have_v a_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n famous_a and_o illustrious_a whereof_o not_o one_o have_v be_v opposite_a in_o religion_n to_o his_o immediate_a predecessor_n prove_v evident_o that_o this_o church_n have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o as_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o 300._o stone_n range_v in_o order_n if_o no_o two_o stone_n be_v find_v in_o that_o line_n of_o different_a colour_n then_o if_o the_o first_o be_v white_a the_o second_o be_v white_a so_o the_o rest_n unto_o the_o last_o even_o so_o if_o there_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o 300._o bishop_n all_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n if_o the_o first_o have_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o peter_n the_o second_o likewise_o have_v the_o same_o and_o so_o the_o rest_n even_o until_o the_o last_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la confessionem_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la even_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o humane_a kind_n as_o s._n augustine_n l._n the_o util_a cred._n cap._n 17._o speak_v for_o how_o can_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v eminent_o and_o notorious_o apostolical_a if_o the_o church_n deliver_v the_o same_o have_v not_o a_o it_o a_o the_o minister_n say_v p._n 67._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o this_o note_n of_o succession_n make_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o their_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n be_v able_a to_o exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n or_o derivation_n both_o of_o their_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v ridiculous_a for_o if_o they_o can_v real_o exhibit_v such_o a_o pedigree_n and_o derivation_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o all_o age_n from_o christ_n to_o luther_n why_o do_v they_o still_o keep_v we_o in_o suspense_n and_o never_o exhibit_v the_o same_o which_o we_o so_o earnest_o beg_v at_o their_o hand_n let_v they_o but_o name_v the_o church_n or_o pastor_n that_o do_v commit_v unto_o luther_n the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o roman_a religion_n the_o roman_a church_n make_v he_o priest_n &_o give_v he_o commission_n to_o preach_v her_o doctrine_n but_o to_o preach_v against_o her_o religion_n who_o give_v he_o order_n that_o commission_n to_o preach_v see_v he_o have_v it_o not_o from_o any_o church_n as_o be_v manifest_a he_o have_v it_o either_o from_o himself_o coin_v a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o head_n out_o of_o scripture_n understand_v in_o his_o own_o manner_n or_o from_o satan_n with_o who_o he_o confer_v and_o unto_o who_o argument_n he_o yield_v as_o himself_o do_v witness_n tom._n 7._o wittenberg_n fol._n 228._o or_o else_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o then_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v this_o immediate_a revelation_n know_v by_o miracle_n let_v not_o minister_n therefore_o idle_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n feed_v we_o with_o word_n but_o afford_v we_o present_a payment_n of_o so_o long_a a_o exact_v debt_n if_o they_o know_v the_o pedigree_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o labour_n be_v not_o great_a to_o write_v the_o name_n of_o their_o ancestor_n in_o every_o age_n that_o do_v they_o may_v rest_v for_o if_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o these_o their_o pretend_a ancestor_n be_v either_o catholic_a roman_n or_o else_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o in_o substantial_a point_n and_o this_o by_o as_o authentic_a record_n as_o they_o do_v to_o prove_v they_o hold_v some_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o victory_n shall_v be_v they_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v thus_o delude_v man_n by_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v and_o yet_o never_o do_v it_o manifest_a and_o conspicuous_a pedigree_n or_o derivation_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o convince_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n epist._n 48._o circa_fw-la medium_n how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v manifest_o christ_n if_o we_o have_v not_o also_o receive_v manifest_o his_o church_n it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o philosophy_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unum_fw-la quodque_fw-la tale_n &_o illud_fw-la magis_fw-la but_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n his_o glory_n his_o virtue_n his_o miracle_n be_v to_o the_o world_n famous_o know_v from_o age_n to_o age_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o preach_n who_o in_o her_o first_o pastor_n see_v he_o with_o their_o eye_n ergo_fw-la this_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o famous_a more_o illustrious_a as_o able_a to_o give_v fame_n even_o unto_o the_o being_n and_o doctrine_n and_o action_n of_o christ._n four_o this_o church_n be_v one_o that_o be_v all_o the_o pastor_n see_v pastor_n the_o minister_n pag._n 108._o lin_v 14._o allege_v the_o difference_n among_o schoolman_n particular_o betwixt_o dominican_n &_o jesuit_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o explicate_v the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n want_v unity_n of_o faith_n as_o much_o as_o protestant_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v idle_a these_o difference_n not_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o scholman_n shall_v preach_v different_a doctrine_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n and_o the_o church_n this_o notwithstanding_o shall_v allow_v of_o both_o side_n as_o her_o child_n than_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n disunion_n in_o faith_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o allow_v such_o dissonant_n preacher_n only_o she_o permit_v they_o to_o differ_v in_o matter_n they_o teach_v as_o great_a probability_n and_o private_a opinion_n if_o any_o preach_v their_o private_a probability_n as_o doctrine_n and_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v other_o as_o heretic_n except_o they_o recall_v their_o censure_n the_o roman_a church_n shut_v they_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n not_o permit_v disunion_n in_o faith_n for_o such_o permittance_n will_v utter_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o her_o preach_n &_o show_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n she_o be_v a_o church_n to_o be_v believe_v no_o further_o they_o see_v and_o preacher_n thereof_o deliver_v and_o consequent_o all_o her_o professor_n and_o child_n believe_v one_o &_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o if_o the_o preacher_n and_o pastor_n
of_o the_o church_n disagree_v about_o matter_n which_o they_o preach_v as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v their_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n be_v of_o credit_n therein_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o persuade_v who_o will_v or_o can_v firm_o believe_v disagree_v witness_n upon_o their_o word_n and_o this_o truth_n this_o by_o this_o note_n protestant_n be_v convince_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n allow_v that_o dissonant_n doctrine_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n she_o permit_v that_o her_o preacher_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n without_o disclaim_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o either_o side_n for_o she_o embrace_v in_o her_o communion_n both_o lutheran_n who_o preach_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o carnal_a manducation_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n by_o the_o wicked_a luther_n tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 264._o and_o caluinist_n who_o detest_v this_o carnal_a manducation_n as_o blasphemous_a and_o impious_a caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n that_o allow_v of_o dissonant_n preach_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v she_o be_v the_o one_o true_a church_n which_o allow_v that_o doctrine_n she_o know_v to_o be_v false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a church_n know_v that_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o side_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a therefore_o consent_v that_o both_o side_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o faith_n &_o as_o save_v truth_n she_o yield_v that_o doctrine_n knowne_o false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n and_o save_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n as_o much_o as_o of_o truth_n consent_n must_v be_v conspicuous_a and_o evident_a for_o if_o in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n preacher_n dissent_v one_o from_o another_o in_o main_n &_o material_a doctrine_n their_o authority_n be_v craze_v and_o their_o testimony_n of_o no_o esteem_n howsoever_o perchance_o their_o dissension_n may_v be_v by_o some_o distinction_n so_o colour_v that_o one_o can_v reader_n can_v one_o can_v convince_v a_o obstinate_a gaynsayer_n &_o wrester_n of_o word_n but_o still_o he_o will_v wrangle_v yet_o may_v he_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o do_v falsify_v and_o wrong_v author_n in_o his_o interpretation_n and_o this_o evident_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n convince_v he_o that_o will_v bold_o undertake_v to_o defend_v as_o 42_o as_o d._n field_n lib._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 42_o doctor_n field_n undertake_v for_o protestant_n that_o their_o dissension_n be_v but_o verbal_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v the_o accuse_a dissentioner_n allow_v this_o doctor_n reconciliation_n do_v they_o give_v over_o contention_n thereupon_o no_o but_o profess_v that_o such_o reconciler_n miss_v of_o their_o meaning_n &_o that_o they_o disagree_v substantial_o about_o the_o very_a prime_a article_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v these_o man_n be_v witness_n of_o credit_n for_o substantial_a article_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v open_o confess_v &_o profess_a dissension_n among_o they_o five_o i_o infer_v that_o this_o church_n be_v universal_a spread_v over_o all_o nation_n that_o she_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o moral_o where_o moral_o that_o be_v according_a unto_o common_a humane_a reputation_n by_o which_o a_o thing_n diffuse_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o famous_o know_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.12_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n be_v still_o universal_a and_o every_o where_o by_o this_o be_v answer_v all_o the_o minister_n bring_v upon_o mistake_v of_o moral_o moral_o speak_v be_v so_o diffuse_v that_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o as_o of_o a_o worthy_a and_o credible_a witness_n of_o christian_a tradition_n howsoever_o her_o outward_a glory_n and_o splendour_n peace_n and_o tranquillity_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v in_o some_o place_n more_o or_o less_o and_o not_o ever_o in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o prove_v out_o of_o 34.37_o of_o the_o text_n apocalyps_n 20.8_o say_v they_o the_o pursevamt_n of_o antichrist_n go_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n &_o belove_a city_n which_o place_n prove_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n and_o camp_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n this_o verse_n the_o minister_n mistake_v of_o purpose_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o cit_v the_o seven_o and_o very_o absurd_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v christian_n that_o be_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n &_o kill_v they_o where_o they_o be_v not_o and_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o even_o all_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v right_o famous_a &_o continue_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n bullinger_n in_o apocal._n 20._o fulke_o against_o the_o rhem._n in_o thess._n 2._o sect_n 5._o whitaker_n answer_n to_o m._n reynols_n preface_n p_o 34.37_o scripture_n apoc._n 20._o v._o 8._o that_o even_o in_o antichrists_n day_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a for_o she_o shall_v they_o be_v every_o where_o persecute_v which_o can_v not_o be_v except_o she_o be_v every_o where_o visible_a &_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n faith_n for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n thereof_o god_n the_o minister_n say_v p._n 78._o l._n 22._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v cite_v schoolman_n that_o say_v that_o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v only_o a_o velleity_n a_o wish_n a_o complacence_n thence_o conclude_v that_o though_o god_n have_v antecedent_n will_v that_o all_o be_v save_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o always_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_v of_o man_n salvation_n wish_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n second_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a that_o all_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o as_o schoolman_n say_v virtual_o conditional_a that_o be_v god_n have_v a_o will_n that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o if_o the_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o stop_v and_o man_n will_v cooperate_v with_o his_o grace_n whence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o on_o his_o part_n he_o wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o but_o even_o our_o minister_n pag._n 78._o lin_v 38._o grant_n that_o god_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n therefore_o god_n still_o make_v his_o church_n visible_o universal_a ut_fw-la neminem_fw-la lateat_fw-la as_o say_v s._n augustine_n that_o no_o man_n perish_v through_o the_o hiddennes_n and_o invisibility_n thereof_o will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v &_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a church_n know_a the_o answerer_n write_v to_o his_o majesty_n &_o know_v the_o proverb_n sapienti_fw-la verbum_fw-la do_v intend_v by_o this_o word_n to_o insinuate_v how_o god_n provide_v mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o world_n whereof_o one_o part_n be_v many_o age_n unknown_a the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n much_o urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 78_o consist_v in_o these_o point_n first_o god_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o this_o know_a world_n provide_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o visible_o spread_v over_o the_o same_o &_o famous_o know_v second_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o by_o navigation_n and_o other_o such_o natural_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v discoveuer_v unto_o this_o world_n where_o our_o
saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o his_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a three_o he_o still_o provide_v as_o experience_n show_v that_o in_o the_o firm_a member_n of_o this_o his_o visible_a church_n such_o zeal_n &_o charity_n be_v find_v that_o nation_n can_v no_o soon_o be_v discover_v but_o present_o some_o preacher_n pass_v thither_o with_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o gospel_n four_o hence_o the_o cause_n why_o some_o nation_n hear_v not_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o any_o defect_n in_o his_o church_n but_o the_o want_n of_o work_v in_o the_o natural_a cause_n to_o discover_v such_o country_n which_o defect_n god_n will_v not_o ever_o miraculous_o supply_v five_o if_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n keep_v her_o religion_n to_o herself_o not_o dare_v to_o profess_v or_o preach_v the_o same_o unto_o other_o nation_n may_v be_v discover_v &_o yet_o not_o a_o whit_n the_o near_a in_o respect_n of_o know_v the_o gospel_n hence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v for_o many_o age_n as_o protestant_n acknowledge_v they_o be_v man_n shall_v perish_v not_o through_o defect_n in_o the_o natural_a cause_n but_o only_o through_o the_o hiddennes_n obscurity_n &_o wretchedness_n of_o the_o supernatural_a mean_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o church_n not_o dare_v to_o make_v profession_n of_o her_o religion_n to_o the_o world_n but_o this_o be_v impossible_a for_o then_o god_n shall_v not_o for_o his_o part_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v ever_o universal_a and_o notorious_o know_v &_o consequent_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v be_v the_o true_a church_n nation_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o all_o man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v six_o this_o church_n be_v holy_a both_o in_o life_n &_o doctrine_n holy_a for_o life_n shine_v in_o all_o excellent_a and_o wonderful_a catholicae_fw-la wonderful_a sanctity_n to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n divine_a and_o excellent_a &_o on_o the_o other_o external_a &_o manifest_a unto_o sense_n be_v it_o not_o evident_a unto_o sense_n it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sign_n be_v it_o not_o divine_a it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n sanctify_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n hence_o appear_v the_o idleness_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o pag._n 81._o reject_v external_a extraordinary_a sanctity_n make_v inward_a sanctity_n a_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o he_o prove_v his_o church_n to_o be_v holy_a because_o forsooth_o she_o be_v cleanse_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v idle_a for_o how_o can_v this_o inward_a sanctity_n cause_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n except_o it_o be_v make_v know_v by_o outward_a excellent_a work_n hence_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o this_o sign_n of_o sanctity_n matth._n 7.16_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o and_o let_v your_o light_a shine_n before_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o work_n matth._n 5.16_o see_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la lib._n 17._o and_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la sanctity_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n give_v example_n of_o as_o poverty_n fall_v poverty_n the_o minister_n pag._n 82._o lin_v 35._o say_v that_o vow_a chastity_n make_v most_o of_o our_o church_n more_o impure_a than_o dog_n before_o god_n and_o man_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v blasphemy_n for_o the_o breach_n of_o vow_a chastity_n not_o the_o vow_v thereof_o make_v man_n impure_a before_o god_n otherwise_o who_o shall_v be_v more_o loathsome_a in_o his_o sight_n they_o his_o immaculate_a mother_n who_o vow_v chastity_n as_o the_o father_n prove_v by_o the_o gospel_n luc._n 1.34_o this_o blasphemy_n be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n with_o that_o of_o turk_n who_o say_v that_o the_o christian_a band_n of_o chastity_n to_o one_o immaculate_a bed_n forbid_v multitude_n of_o wife_n make_v christian_n more_o impure_a than_o dog_n which_o they_o prove_v because_o now_o many_o thousand_o of_o christian_n fall_v into_o adultery_n incest_n and_o other_o impurity_n which_o will_v not_o have_v be_v have_v christ_n permit_v as_o mahomet_n do_v the_o holy_a liberty_n of_o many_o wife_n which_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n enjoy_v to_o this_o heretical_a turkish_a accusation_n of_o the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v convenient_a that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v exact_v of_o his_o follower_n such_o sanctity_n and_o chastity_n as_o may_v suit_n with_o the_o perfection_n of_o so_o divine_a a_o lawmaker_n and_o though_o he_o know_v many_o thousand_o will_v therein_o be_v defective_a for_o who_o therefore_o in_o his_o mercy_n he_o provide_v the_o remedy_n of_o penance_n yet_o this_o fail_v of_o some_o be_v but_o a_o effect_n of_o human_a frailty_n he_o think_v it_o more_o tolerable_a then_o that_o he_o shall_v allow_v by_o his_o law_n such_o liberty_n of_o lust_n as_o be_v undecent_a for_o his_o sanctity_n to_o permit_v and_o unworthy_a of_o a_o people_n redeem_v with_o his_o blood_n whereby_o there_o will_v have_v be_v few_o sinner_n among_o christian_n not_o through_o strictness_n of_o life_n but_o through_o the_o looseness_n of_o his_o law_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o wisdom_n do_v and_o do_v ever_o exact_a perfect_a chastity_n of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o her_o clergy_n though_o she_o be_v sure_a that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n many_o will_v fail_v who_o must_v seek_v to_o be_v save_v by_o penance_n as_o adultery_n in_o christian_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v suffer_v then_o avoid_v by_o allow_v many_o wife_n general_o unto_o christian_n though_o this_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o intrinsical_o evil_a even_o so_o the_o fall_n of_o some_o votay_v be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o inconvenience_n as_o this_o be_v that_o sacred_a minister_n shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o profess_v chastity_n worthy_a of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christian_a priesthood_n the_o sin_v against_o chastity_n be_v humane_a infirmity_n but_o the_o not_o exact_v thereof_o a_o indignity_n in_o the_o very_a christian_a law_n for_o all_o man_n not_o blind_v with_o passion_n see_v it_o be_v most_o undecent_a that_o christian_a consecrate_a minister_n shall_v go_v a_o woo_n and_o wive_n and_o when_o one_o wife_n die_v wed_v another_o as_o often_o as_o they_o please_v as_o the_o protestant_a pretend_v holy_a minister_n use_v to_o do_v this_o practice_n be_v so_o evident_o unworthy_a and_o against_o all_o christian_a decency_n as_o they_o can_v bring_v one_o allow_v example_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n in_o any_o former_a age_n that_o do_v permit_v liberty_n of_o woo_v &_o wive_n after_o holy_a order_n which_o even_o the_o grecian_a church_n do_v detest_v let_v they_o therefore_o consider_v how_o they_o can_v be_v the_o holy_a church_n that_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o profess_v high_a sanctity_n that_o become_v a_o christian_a church_n no_o not_o in_o her_o consecrate_a minister_n and_o more_o religious_a professor_n special_o see_v also_o minister_n by_o marriage_n do_v not_o whole_o avoid_v the_o stain_n of_o wander_a lust_n and_o other_o impurity_n yea_o themselves_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v at_o the_o least_o as_o vicious_a as_o the_o catholic_a clergy_n the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o report_n of_o zealous_a complaint_n against_o sin_n nor_o be_v the_o exaggerated_a generality_n thereof_o to_o be_v urge_v as_o exact_v truth_n with_o which_o kind_n of_o stuff_n our_o minister_n have_v most_o impertinent_o patch_v up_o many_o page_n of_o his_o book_n see_v pag._n 82.83.111_o &_o seq_n for_o zealous_a complaint_n be_v hyperbolical_a even_o in_o holy_a scripture_n as_o all_o know_v and_o if_o protestant_n be_v remeasured_a again_o by_o this_o rule_n whereby_o they_o measure_v we_o they_o will_v get_v the_o worst_a for_o themselves_o complain_v that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v worse_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o doctrine_n luther_n postil_n in_o dom._n 1._o advent_n &_o that_o sin_n have_v never_o be_v so_o rife_o but_o through_o the_o rifenes_n of_o their_o gospel_n doctor_n king_n in_o jonam_fw-la lecture_n 45._o that_o scarce_o the_o ten_o man_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v moral_o honest_a caluin_n in_o pannych_a &_o in_o comm_n 2._o 1._o petr._n 2._o no_o not_o one_o but_z all_o be_v dissolute_a and_o lewd_a say_v luther_n dom._n 26._o post_fw-la trinit_fw-la in_o so_o much_o as_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o enormous_a wickedness_n of_o their_o ministry_n &_o church_n any_o man_n may_v just_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n say_v eberus_n praefat_fw-la
be_v prove_v that_o she_o depart_v from_o herself_o that_o be_v from_o the_o mother_n &_o original_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o she_o can_v apostle_n can_v here_o the_o minister_n pag._n 128._o again_o repeat_v his_o say_n that_o negative_a argument_n from_o humane_a history_n be_v unconsequent_a which_o his_o say_n as_o have_v be_v show_v be_v against_o the_o consent_n of_o mankind_n his_o argument_n against_o this_o ground_n of_o perpetual_a ecclesiastical_a tradition_n know_v by_o notorious_a fame_n of_o history_n be_v by_o he_o name_v four_o but_o the_o four_o contain_v four_o branch_n and_o so_o they_o be_v eight_o which_o i_o will_v set_v down_o &_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a that_o the_o humane_a history_n of_o all_o matter_n shall_v be_v compose_v answer_n there_o be_v a_o clear_a lineal_a succession_n of_o prince_n and_o prelate_n from_o the_o apostle_n famous_o &_o particulre_o know_v it_o be_v impossible_a but_o that_o historical_a tradition_n either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a shall_v deliver_v most_o notorious_o the_o substantial_a matter_n of_o fact_n do_v since_o that_o time_n these_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o cause_v great_a change_n in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o civil_a affair_n the_o set_n up_o the_o pull_v down_o and_o change_v of_o renown_a kingdom_n &_o state_n ân_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o beginning_n of_o religion_n the_o most_o famous_a pastor_n thereof_o the_o conversion_n of_o great_a nation_n the_o spring_a up_o of_o heresy_n &_o potent_a sect_n their_o prevail_a their_o be_v resist_v their_o overthrow_n and_o common_o also_o the_o name_n of_o their_o principal_a &_o renown_a patron_n âhese_n illustrious_a thing_n when_o there_o be_v particular_a tradition_n even_o to_o the_o very_a name_n of_o person_n can_v not_o be_v hide_v second_o when_o history_n be_v write_v it_o cause_v only_o humane_a faith_n answer_n humane_a history_n make_v by_o mere_a human_a writer_n and_o preacher_n concern_v humane_a and_o natural_a thing_n breed_v only_o human_a faith_n but_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n make_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n consecrate_v to_o that_o end_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n deliver_v divine_a reveal_v thing_n be_v infallible_a breed_v not_o only_o human_a faith_n but_o be_v elevate_v by_o the_o concurrence_n of_o divine_a authority_n towards_o the_o production_n of_o divine_a faith_n as_o have_v be_v say_v three_o history_n may_v total_o perish_v and_o be_v suppress_v or_o corrupt_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n answer_n concern_v substantial_a renown_a matter_n which_o be_v know_v not_o only_o by_o report_n but_o also_o by_o their_o permanent_a effect_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o fame_n and_o tradition_n shall_v be_v suppress_v or_o corrupt_v so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o example_n arius_n his_o doctrine_n luther_n occasion_n of_o change_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n king_n henry_n breach_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o can_v never_o be_v suppress_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n so_o long_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o famous_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n though_o about_o this_o or_o that_o circumstance_n that_o be_v not_o so_o notorious_a question_n be_v move_v and_o new_a may_v arise_v four_o history_n may_v be_v repugnnant_n to_o history_n answer_n this_o can_v be_v about_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o narration_n when_o the_o matter_n thereof_o be_v in_o manner_n aforesaid_a illustrious_a to_o wit_n when_o they_o be_v not_o only_o declare_v by_o full_a report_n but_o also_o declare_v themselves_o by_o effect_n though_o in_o circumstance_n there_o may_v be_v variety_n of_o report_n five_o even_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o the_o principal_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n to_o wit_n the_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v not_o be_v faithful_o preserve_v answer_n ancient_a general_n counsel_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o their_o definition_n which_o they_o âid_v principal_o intend_v be_v and_o ever_o be_v famous_o know_v yea_o tradition_n have_v make_v the_o fame_n of_o they_o immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a so_o long_o as_o a_o visible_a profess_v church_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n heretic_n may_v endeavour_v to_o misreport_v and_o corrupt_v counsel_n as_o also_o they_o do_v scripture_n but_o âhey_n never_o can_v prevail_v as_o concern_v any_o substantial_a matter_n six_o many_o thing_n suppositious_a have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a ãâã_d bastardly_a book_n pass_v under_o the_o title_n of_o father_n answer_n as_o though_o also_o there_o have_v not_o be_v many_o suppositious_a book_n urge_v as_o scripture_n by_o heretic_n to_o wit_v the_o ghospell_n of_o peter_n of_o thomas_n of_o bartholomew_n do_v not_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n namely_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o s._n augustine_n receyve_v some_o book_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 12._o which_o protestant_n partly_o caluinist_n partly_o lutheran_n reject_v must_v we_o therefore_o refuse_v trial_n by_o scripture_n no_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o we_o have_v by_o most_o certain_a tradition_n innumerable_a work_n that_o be_v undeniable_o ancient_a though_o question_n be_v move_v about_o some_o which_o therefore_o can_v be_v urge_v till_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v ancient_a seaventh_o the_o papist_n be_v a_o part_n purge_v &_o alter_v such_o record_n answer_n this_o be_v untruth_n we_o purge_v not_o any_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_a as_o any_o may_v see_v with_o his_o eye_n that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v our_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la set_v forth_o by_o the_o protestant_a junius_n and_o compare_v the_o expurgation_n with_o the_o book_n eight_o the_o papist_n despise_v and_o contemn_v historian_n as_o eusebius_n sozomen_n socrates_n when_o they_o be_v against_o their_o tenet_n answer_n when_o good_a historian_n do_v not_o agree_v the_o matter_n can_v be_v certain_a but_o must_v be_v decide_v by_o coninecture_n which_o do_v never_o happen_v about_o the_o substance_n of_o famous_a fact_n that_o by_o effect_n make_v themselves_o notorious_a to_o the_o world_n when_o historian_n be_v singular_a they_o may_v be_v reject_v special_o when_o the_o author_n be_v otherwise_o heretic_n and_o the_o narration_n wherein_o they_o be_v singular_a favour_v their_o heresye_n thus_o eusebius_n be_v a_o arrian_n be_v not_o trust_v in_o some_o narration_n against_o other_o historian_n concern_v constantine_n that_o seem_v to_o favour_n arrianisme_n socrates_n and_o sozomen_n be_v novatians_n be_v not_o easy_o credit_v in_o singular_a narration_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o sect_n though_o as_o i_o say_v concern_v matter_n &_o illustrious_a fact_n which_o make_v themselves_o evident_a to_o mankind_n by_o effect_n as_o be_v the_o change_n of_o christian_a religion_n over_o the_o world_n resistance_n make_v against_o all_o open_a and_o notorious_a sect_n and_o who_o be_v the_o resister_n who_o the_o resist_v such_o difference_n be_v never_o find_v about_o substance_n but_o only_o in_o circumstance_n and_o only_o this_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v these_o kind_n of_o notorious_a matter_n which_o be_v as_o clear_o apostolical_a as_o the_o sun_n be_v bright_a at_o noon_n day_n we_o make_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n that_o our_o roman_a religion_n have_v not_o be_v change_v since_o the_o apostle_n be_v prove_v to_o have_v change_v her_o doctrine_n since_o the_o apostle_n by_o any_o monument_n of_o history_n or_o antiquity_n yea_o the_o contrary_a in_o my_o judgement_n may_v be_v most_o evident_o prove_v in_o this_o sort_n the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v for_o diverse_a age_n universal_o receyve_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o no_o time_n of_o their_o beginning_n be_v assignable_a must_v be_v doctrine_n unchanged_a come_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a &_o latent_fw-la &_o because_o this_o matter_n be_v stiff_o not_o to_o say_v outface_o deny_v by_o the_o minister_n pa._n 129._o &_o 134._o behold_v the_o very_a word_n of_o protestant_n d._n hutterus_n luther_n successor_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o wittenberg_n de_fw-fr sacrificio_fw-la missatico_n pag._n 377._o i_o willing_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o roman_a idolary_n who_o pith_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v occupy_v in_o manner_n the_o whole_a world_n special_o for_o the_o last_o thousand_o year_n hospinian_n the_o successor_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la in_o his_o chair_n &_o superintendency_n hist._n sacram_fw-la pa._n 1._o pag._n 157._o in_o the_o age_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a that_o be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o all_o manner_n of_o popish_a idolatry_n &_o superstition_n as_o a_o main_n sea_n overwhelm_v and_o drown_v in_o manner_n the_o whole_a world_n no_o man_n make_v resistance_n against_o it_o simon_n de_fw-fr voyol_n a_o genevian_a minister_n and_o of_o caluins_n school_n in_o his_o
catalogue_n of_o doctor_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n say_v in_o the_o year_n 605._o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o falsehood_n prevayl_v and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n overwhelm_v in_o the_o dregs_n of_o antichristian_a filthiness_n abominable_a tradition_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o pope_n m._n perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n pag._n 307._o &_o 400._o say_v during_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n the_o popish_a heresy_n have_v spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o universal_a apostasy_n overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o that_o our_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n m._n fulke_o treatise_n against_o stapleton_n and_o martial_n pag._n 25._o the_o pope_n have_v blind_v the_o world_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n some_o say_v 900._o some_o 1000_o some_o 1200._o master_n napier_n revelat._n pag._n 64._o &_o 101._o the_o antichristian_a and_o papistical_a reign_n begin_v about_o the_o year_n 316._o after_o christ_n reign_v universal_o without_o debatable_a contradiction_n god_n true_a church_n abide_v certain_o bid_v and_o latent_fw-la confess_v by_o the_o protestant's_n who_o testimony_n plentiful_a in_o this_o behalf_n if_o need_v require_v shall_v be_v bring_v first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o protestant_n refuse_v have_v be_v universal_o receyve_v for_o many_o age_n a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o ever_o since_o boniface_n the_o three_o second_o that_o protestant_n can_v tell_v the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o change_v and_o deviate_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o succession_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n never_o change_v her_o faith_n so_o that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o apostolical_a if_o the_o mayor_n of_o the_o first_o argument_n be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o rejoinder_n that_o the_o minister_n pag._n 15._o say_v the_o jesuite_n convey_v into_o s._n augustin_n proposition_n certain_a word_n to_o wit_n doctrine_n universal_o receive_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o s._n augustine_n for_o this_o father_n do_v never_o allow_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v any_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n not_o command_v in_o scripture_n i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n will_v discover_v the_o minister_n what_o he_o be_v for_o these_o they_o be_v formal_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la baptis_fw-la c._n 23._o many_o thing_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o therefore_o be_v true_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o be_v not_o write_v thus_o he_o and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n which_o may_v not_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o derive_v from_o thence_o by_o consequence_n yet_o this_o logical_a deduction_n do_v not_o suffice_v to_o make_v doctrine_n to_o be_v universal_o matter_n of_o faith_n except_o they_o be_v also_o deliver_v express_o by_o tradition_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a as_o have_v be_v often_o show_v in_o this_o rejoinder_n doctrine_n universal_o receyve_v who_o beginning_n be_v not_o know_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o apostolical_a and_o what_o more_o true_a this_o be_v a_o principle_n set_v down_o by_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 4._o the_o baptism_n cont_n donat._n c._n 6._o &_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 23._o allow_v by_o doctor_n whitguift_n late_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n defence_n pag._n 351._o &_o 352._o who_o in_o his_o book_n write_v by_o public_a authority_n against_o puritan_n cite_v diverse_a protestant_n as_o concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o opinion_n be_v not_o know_v to_o have_v begin_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o same_o be_v not_o new_a or_o secundary_a but_o receyve_v their_o original_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o because_o this_o principle_n of_o christian_a divinity_n bring_v in_o as_o m._n cartwright_n there_o allege_v speak_v all_o popery_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n i_o will_v further_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o though_o of_o itself_o clear_a enough_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n or_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n be_v still_o with_o the_o church_n can_v permit_v error_n in_o faith_n so_o to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o they_o grow_v irreformable_a even_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n but_o if_o error_n can_v so_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o their_o beginning_n can_v not_o be_v know_v since_o the_o apostle_n and_o never_o be_v espy_v till_o they_o be_v universal_o receive_v than_o error_n can_v so_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n &_o prevail_v that_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n they_o be_v irreformable_a this_o i_o prove_v because_o error_n ãâã_d irreformable_a ãâã_d the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o pharisee_n be_v universal_o receive_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o yet_o reform_v by_o our_o saviour_n i_o answer_v first_o his_o desire_n to_o make_v our_o religion_n like_o the_o pharisee_n make_v he_o fashion_n unto_o the_o pharisee_n a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o head_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o read_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o pharisy_n be_v certain_a practice_n of_o piety_n invent_v by_o themselves_o &_o deduct_v by_o their_o skill_n from_o scripture_n whereby_o they_o will_v seem_v singular_o religious_a &_o non_fw-la sicut_fw-la caeteri_fw-la hominum_fw-la second_o christ_n jesus_n prove_v himself_o to_o be_v true_a god_n may_v reform_v error_n universal_o receive_v &_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n fall_v erect_v a_o new_a church_n of_o christian_n as_o he_o do_v but_o this_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n either_o before_o or_o since_o for_o christian_a religion_n must_v continue_v until_o the_o world_n end_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o tradition_n thereof_o never_o interrupt_v without_o extraordinary_a and_o prophetical_a beginning_n by_o immediate_a revelation_n &_o miracle_n and_o so_o if_o error_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o christian_a tradition_n they_o be_v irreformable_a irreformable_a by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n when_o whosoever_o undertake_v ãâã_d reform_v they_o be_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n but_o he_o that_o will_v undertake_v to_o reform_v doctrine_n universal_o receive_v by_o âhe_n church_n oppose_v against_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v by_o the_o most_o receaâed_a and_o know_v principle_n of_o christianity_n and_o christ_n own_o direct_a precept_n to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o heretic_n a_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o one_o man_n may_v oppose_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o oppugn_v her_o error_n by_o scripture_n and_o not_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o heretic_n for_o not_o every_o one_o that_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o heathen_a but_o only_o such_o as_o in_o ordinat_o and_o without_o just_a cause_n oppugn_v it_o thus_o he_o pag._n 136._o i_o answer_v by_o this_o doctrine_n every_o particular_a man_n be_v make_v examiner_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o her_o judge_n and_o hellish_a confusion_n bring_v into_o christendom_n if_o against_o the_o sentence_n of_o perpetual_a universal_a tradition_n a_o private_a man_n may_v without_o heresy_n pretend_v scripture_n &_o stand_v stiff_o therein_o and_o though_o the_o church_n give_v seem_v &_o appear_v answer_n unto_o his_o scripture_n yet_o condemn_v she_o say_v these_o answer_n be_v sophistical_a as_o our_o minister_n do_v p._n 581._o what_o can_v be_v more_o disorderly_a or_o what_o be_v heretical_a obstinacy_n if_o this_o be_v not_o wherefore_o s._n august_n epist_n 48._o say_v absolute_o it_o be_v impossible_a man_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o depart_v and_o impugn_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n add_v nos_fw-la cerâò_fw-la scimus_fw-la hereof_o we_o christian_n be_v sure_a and_o why_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o rule_v christian_a case_n he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v a_o heretic_n heathen_a and_o publican_n matth._n 18._o vers_fw-la 17._o and_o as_o s._n augustine_n âayth_o epist._n 118._o to_o dispute_n against_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n special_o when_o the_o doctrine_n be_v ancient_a without_o any_o know_a beginning_n as_o be_v the_o suppose_a erroneous_a custom_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o then_o the_o undertake_v reformer_n must_v strive_v against_o not_o only_o the_o whole_a present_a church_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n since_o the_o apostle_n et_fw-la quis_fw-la ad_fw-la haec_fw-la idoneus_fw-la who_o be_v able_a to_o begin_v a_o new_a course_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o overthrow_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v universal_o receyve_v &_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n
as_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v may_v be_v grant_v only_o it_o do_v rash_o apply_v god_n extraordinary_a favour_n to_o person_n without_o sufficient_a warrant_n the_o second_o error_n be_v that_o though_o baptism_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n yet_o in_o defect_n thereof_o there_o be_v also_o another_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o their_o salvation_n to_o wit_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n this_o error_n be_v gross_a because_o it_o presume_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a to_o appoint_v a_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n this_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o protestant_n but_o no_o catholic_a hold_v it_o caietan_n once_o hold_v it_o with_o submission_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o have_v raze_v it_o out_o of_o his_o book_n the_o three_o error_n be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o faithful_a parent_n be_v iustify_v by_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o their_o seed_n and_o be_v god_n adopt_v child_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v so_o that_o baptism_n do_v not_o true_o regenerate_v they_o &_o make_v they_o god_n child_n but_o be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a and_o adopt_v because_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o sign_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o adoption_n which_o child_n have_v before_o baptism_n yea_o bring_v with_o they_o into_o the_o world_n this_o error_n be_v fundamental_a and_o damnable_a which_o protestant_n hold_v and_o will_v hold_v in_o despite_n of_o their_o church_n and_o yet_o dare_v she_o not_o say_v they_o be_v not_o her_o child_n caluin_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccles._n reform_v inter_fw-la eius_fw-la opuscula_fw-la fol._n 759._o write_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n holy_a and_o sanctify_v because_o their_o child_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o womb_n before_o they_o draw_v breath_n be_v adopt_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n go_v before_o baptism_n which_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o halfe-saluation_n but_o bring_v perfect_a and_o full_a salvation_n which_o be_v afterward_o sign_v by_o baptism_n thus_o caluin_n what_o the_o minister_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o say_v caluin_n to_o prove_v he_o hold_v that_o baptism_n do_v true_o sanctify_v to_o wit_n that_o child_n be_v regenerate_v by_o baptism_n be_v idle_a for_o unto_o it_o caluin_n himself_o have_v make_v answer_n l._n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 15._o §._o 2._o when_o say_v he_o baptism_n be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a to_o renew_v to_o sanctify_v to_o save_v man_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o our_o purgation_n &_o salvation_n be_v make_v by_o water_n or_o that_o water_n have_v virtue_n to_o purify_v to_o regenerate_v to_o renew_v but_o only_o because_o by_o that_o sign_n we_o conceyve_v knowledge_n and_o certitude_n of_o such_o gift_n for_o what_o be_v give_v by_o the_o message_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v sign_v and_o seal_v by_o baptism_n here_o also_o i_o conclude_v that_o either_o the_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o they_o must_v grant_v four_o thing_n first_o that_o caluin_n and_o his_o part_n err_v fundamental_o second_o that_o culuinist_n can_v be_v save_v except_o they_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o religion_n three_o that_o among_o protestant_n there_o be_v dissension_n about_o fundamental_a matter_n four_o that_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o exclude_v from_o their_o communion_n such_o as_o hold_v substantial_a heresy_n necessity_n thereof_o for_o infant_n to_o who_o they_o grant_v salvation_n without_o baptism_n seaventh_o their_o error_n against_o the_o point_v the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o protestant_n only_o deny_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o wit_n transubstantiation_n not_o the_o substance_n thereof_o because_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o effectual_o present_a to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o present_a by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o operative_a faith_n pag._n 178.179_o &_o seq_n &_o pag._n 390._o &_o 395._o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o answerer_n say_v this_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v not_o real_a nor_o true_a but_o only_o pious_a imagination_n at_o the_o most_o as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o sixth_o point_v real_a presence_n which_o they_o deny_v or_o else_o the_o main_n article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n be_v still_o in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n for_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o eight_o their_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o fundamental_o of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 189._o say_v that_o protestant_n allow_v auricular_a confession_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n but_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o of_o necessity_n in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o cit_v the_o augustane_n confession_n answer_n if_o the_o minister_n approve_v the_o augustan_n confession_n he_o must_v approve_v priestly_a absolution_n to_o be_v true_o a_o sacrament_n and_o of_o necessity_n be_v command_v of_o god_n even_o as_o baptism_n be_v for_o thus_o they_o write_v cap._n de_fw-fr numero_fw-la &_o usu_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la the_o true_a sacrament_n be_v baptism_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n absolution_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n for_o these_o rite_n have_v the_o same_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o promise_v of_o grace_n proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n thus_o they_o so_o even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o confession_n which_o they_o esteem_v as_o contain_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o their_o religion_n our_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o penance_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n the_o necessary_a mean_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n commit_v after_o give_v after_o against_o this_o sacrament_n the_o minister_n dispute_v large_o but_o his_o argument_n be_v trivial_a which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n conceal_v the_o solution_n which_o who_o will_n may_v there_o read_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n what_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o some_o catholic_a author_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o prove_v clear_o this_o sacrament_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o for_o sin_n after_o baptism_n by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hard_o but_o easy_a which_o you_o may_v see_v full_o perform_v by_o bellarmine_n but_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n so_o clear_o as_o some_o cavil_n may_v not_o be_v take_v at_o the_o argument_n this_o be_v difficile_a and_o no_o wonder_n see_v our_o minister_n pag._n 541._o lin_v 9_o do_v grant_v that_o even_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v so_o prove_v by_o scripture_n but_o seem_a solution_n may_v be_v give_v baptism_n nine_o their_o deny_v the_o catholic_a church_n express_o set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o of_o all_o other_o article_n be_v with_o heretic_n with_o other_o article_n be_v more_o necessary_a they_o this_o as_o sole_a object_n of_o necessary_a divine_a affection_n &_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v more_o dangerous_o deny_v but_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v necessary_a object_n nothing_o more_o necessary_a than_o this_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o thing_n more_o evident_a &_o therefore_o the_o denial_n thereof_o be_v most_o dangerous_a in_o respect_n of_o heresy_n yea_o the_o article_n without_o resistance_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v be_v heretic_n great_a danger_n deny_v for_o the_o stand_n out_o against_o this_o make_v man_n heretic_n &_o without_o err_v against_o this_o no_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n whatsoever_o doctor_n field_n to_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o a_o errant_a against_o a_o fundamental_a point_n be_v a_o heretic_n though_o he_o err_v without_o we_o without_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v pertinacious_a &_o obstinate_a against_o scripture_n &_o not_o against_o the_o church_n be_v impossible_a for_o either_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o yet_o hold_v it_o he_o do_v judge_n the_o scripture_n not_o to_o be_v christ_n nor_o of_o god_n &_o consequent_o he_o be_v pertinacious_a against_o the_o church_n tradition_n which_o as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v the_o stay_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n if_o he_o see_v not_o his_o exposition_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n but_o be_v deceyve_v by_o conference_n of_o place_n he_o be_v not_o heretic_n until_o know_v his_o exposition_n to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n he_o persist_v therein_o for_o what_o be_v pertinacious_a wilfulness_n but_o to_o resist_v lawful_a authority_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v against_o we_o pertinacity_n whereof_o he_o bring_v not_o any_o syllable_n of_o proof_n &_o
take_v out_o of_o the_o hymn_n and_o verse_n thereof_o if_o they_o that_o by_o beg_v obtain_v of_o the_o king_n the_o life_n of_o one_o condemn_v to_o death_n may_v be_v &_o be_v common_o another_o common_o our_o adversary_n in_o this_o place_n play_v the_o right_a minister_n according_a to_o the_o new_a order_n &_o very_o handsome_o tell_v a_o lie_n say_v to_o the_o jesuit_n you_o labour_v to_o qualify_v your_o blasphemous_a word_n by_o aÌ_o honourable_a exposition_n pretend_v you_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o mean_v another_o what_o boldness_n be_v this_o do_v not_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o they_o not_o only_o mean_v well_o but_o also_o speak_v well_o and_o according_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o speech_n the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n &_o holy_a father_n how_o then_o do_v he_o pretend_v that_o we_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o mean_v another_o say_v to_o save_v his_o life_n though_o they_o save_v he_o by_o intercession_n not_o by_o their_o proper_a authority_n why_o may_v not_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o give_v we_o the_o thing_n which_o by_o their_o prayer_n they_o obtain_v for_o we_o why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n speak_v in_o hymn_n &_o in_o verse_n as_o the_o learn_a father_n speak_v even_o in_o prose_n never_o imagine_v that_o any_o will_v mistake_v their_o meaning_n saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n for_o his_o excellent_a learning_n term_v by_o the_o grecian_n the_o divine_a thus_o pray_v unto_o saint_n cyprian_n look_v down_o on_o we_o from_o heaven_n with_o a_o propitious_a eye_n guide_v our_o work_n and_o way_n feed_v this_o holy_a flock_n govern_v it_o with_o we_o dispose_v some_o of_o they_o as_o far_o as_o be_v possible_a to_o a_o better_a state_n cast_v out_o importune_v and_o troublesome_a wolf_n that_o cavil_v &_o catch_v at_o syllable_n vouchsafe_v we_o the_o perfect_a and_o clear_a splendour_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n with_o who_o thou_o be_v already_o present_a he_o present_a the_o minister_n here_o say_v the_o jesuit_n can_v prove_v that_o gregory_n nazianzen_n do_v invocate_v s._n cyprian_a but_o only_o make_v a_o oratoriall_a apostrophe_n unto_o he_o as_o papist_n say_v in_o their_o hymn_n all_o hail_n o_o cross_n &_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o pray_v to_o the_o wooden_a crosse._n this_o be_v vanity_n for_o that_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n do_v proper_o invocate_v s._n cyprian_n i_o prove_v by_o this_o demonstration_n for_o one_o to_o call_v upon_o some_o person_n for_o aid_n think_v he_o that_o he_o do_v hear_v he_o &_o be_v able_a to_o help_v be_v to_o invocate_v he_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n do_v call_v upon_o s._n cyprian_a for_o help_v think_v he_o hear_v he_o &_o be_v able_a to_o help_v he_o for_o he_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d i_o know_v well_o that_o bless_a saint_n hear_v i_o and_o be_v ready_a to_o reach_v out_o their_o hand_n to_o such_o as_o need_v their_o help_n ergo_fw-la he_o do_v proper_o invocate_v he_o &_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o not_o only_o father_n but_o also_o scripture_n speak_v of_o saint_n in_o the_o same_o sort_n our_o saviour_n say_v make_v to_o yourselves_o friend_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n that_o when_o you_o die_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n if_o then_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o verity_n itself_o be_v say_v to_o receive_v their_o friend_n when_o they_o die_v into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n because_o god_n move_v by_o their_o prayer_n admit_v they_o into_o the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o his_o essence_n why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n and_o her_o child_n crave_v the_o bless_a virgin_n intercession_n in_o these_o word_n mother_n of_o mercy_n receive_v we_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o see_v god_n in_o scripture_n be_v term_v mercy_n why_o shall_v not_o she_o be_v style_v mother_n of_o mercy_n that_o be_v undoubted_o mother_n of_o god_n especial_o see_v that_o in_o and_o of_o her_o the_o author_n of_o mercy_n &_o grace_n be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v and_o she_o fill_v with_o grace_n and_o charity_n above_o all_o other_o creature_n idolatrous_a creature_n the_o silly_a minister_n not_o know_v which_o way_n to_o turn_v himself_o to_o find_v some_o seem_a ground_n of_o carp_n at_o the_o form_n of_o the_o catholic_a missal_n &_o roman_a liturgy_n he_o go_v catch_v at_o the_o phrase_n of_o private_a writer_n to_o what_o purpose_n if_o the_o author_n can_v justify_v their_o phrase_n &_o metaphor_n let_v he_o dislike_v they_o in_o god_n name_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n some_o writer_n do_v not_o apply_v his_o metaphor_n fit_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n be_v idolatrous_a that_o other_o phrase_n much_o dislike_v by_o your_o majesty_n that_o god_n reserve_v justice_n to_o himself_o have_v give_v away_o mercy_n to_o his_o mother_n be_v not_o use_v by_o the_o church_n in_o any_o of_o her_o prayer_n nor_o allow_v of_o by_o catholic_a divines_n nor_o will_v we_o justify_v it_o be_v a_o harsh_a and_o unfitting_a metaphor_n though_o thereby_o the_o author_n thereof_o express_v a_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v exceed_o gracious_a with_o her_o son_n and_o her_o intercession_n very_o potent_a allude_v to_o a_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n use_v hester_n cap._n 5.3.6_o &_o cap._n 7.2_o mark_v 6.23_o whereby_o such_o as_o be_v gracious_a with_o a_o prince_n be_v say_v that_o they_o may_v have_v any_o thing_n though_o half_a of_o his_o kingdom_n so_o devide_v god_n kingdom_n into_o justice_n and_o mercy_n to_o show_v how_o gracious_a the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v with_o her_o son_n they_o say_v god_n have_v give_v she_o one_o half_a of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o wit_n his_o mercy_n which_o be_v a_o metaphor_n far_o fetch_v not_o to_o be_v use_v howsoever_o in_o charity_n it_o may_v be_v excuse_v the_o four_o point_n the_o liturgy_n &_o private_a prayer_n for_o the_o ignorant_a in_o a_o unknown_n tongue_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o point_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o also_o of_o vulgar_a of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 356._o lin_v 22._o it_o be_v false_a according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o bellarmine_n himself_o that_o all_o other_o church_n which_o differ_v from_o protestant_n have_v their_o public_a service_n in_o hebrew_n greek_a or_o latin_a answer_n this_o be_v your_o fashion_n when_o you_o have_v not_o what_o to_o reply_v you_o impose_v your_o say_n upon_o your_o adversary_n and_o then_o urge_v they_o be_v false_a the_o answerer_n never_o say_v that_o all_o church_n which_o differ_v from_o protestant_n have_v their_o service_n in_o hebrew_n greek_a or_o latin_a for_o this_o he_o know_v to_o be_v false_a in_o the_o maronit_n armenian_n egyptian_n aethiopian_n russian_n but_o he_o say_v they_o all_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o that_o they_o have_v their_o divine_a service_n in_o a_o language_n not_o vulgar_a nor_o common_o know_v of_o the_o people_n this_o be_v true_a for_o the_o forenamed_a christian_n have_v their_o liturgy_n in_o a_o special_a language_n which_o be_v not_o their_o vulgar_a all_o church_n now_o in_o the_o world_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a though_o opposite_a unto_o the_o roman_a only_a those_o of_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n except_v which_o constant_a concurrence_n be_v a_o great_a sign_n that_o the_o same_o be_v very_o conform_v unto_o reason_n and_o not_o any_o where_o forbid_v in_o god_n word_n which_o will_v easy_o appear_v if_o we_o look_v particular_o into_o the_o same_o for_o we_o may_v imagine_v a_o triple_a state_n of_o liturgy_n in_o a_o unkowne_a tongue_n the_o first_o in_o a_o language_n altogether_o understand_v altogether_o the_o minister_n pag._n 369._o say_v this_o be_v a_o chimaera_n &_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la because_o there_o be_v never_o such_o a_o liturgy_n in_o the_o church_n answer_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v not_o any_o set_a form_n of_o public_a prayer_n but_o the_o sacred_a minister_n do_v extemporal_o make_v prayer_n at_o meeting_n and_o that_o some_o than_o do_v use_v to_o make_v extemporal_a prayer_n in_o language_n altogether_o unknown_a even_o to_o themselves_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 14._o nor_o be_v it_o enough_o for_o a_o minister_n to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la and_o a_o chimaera_n because_o it_o never_o be_v for_o first_o though_o it_o never_o be_v yet_o it_o may_v have_v be_v and_o thing_n that_o be_v possible_a and_o may_v have_v be_v be_v not_o chimera_n second_o that_o in_o meeting_n some_o do_v use_v a_o language_n altogether_o unknown_a at_o prayer_n s._n paul_n do_v witness_v who_o i_o trow_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v before_o a_o minister_n he_o forbid_v the_o speak_n in_o the_o church_n with_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n when_o there_o be_v none_o present_a that_o
the_o apostle_n prefer_v prayer_n that_o do_v edify_v the_o understanding_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o prohibit_v prayer_n of_o mere_a affection_n without_o new_a instruction_n of_o the_o understanding_n but_o say_v that_o in_o such_o prayer_n man_n pray_v with_o their_o spirit_n and_o affection_n though_o not_o with_o their_o understanding_n now_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v command_v that_o service_n shall_v be_v in_o such_o a_o language_n as_o every_o woman_n in_o the_o church_n may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v it_o word_n by_o word_n lawful_a word_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 374._o that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o distinct_a notion_n of_o every_o word_n hinder_v not_o sufficient_a edification_n when_o the_o ordinary_a necessary_a and_o common_a passage_n of_o the_o public_a service_n be_v intelligible_a thus_o he_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o people_n who_o understand_v not_o latin_a distinct_o may_v by_o instruction_n through_o book_n sermon_n and_o cathechisme_n understand_v the_o ordinary_a necessary_a and_o common_a passage_n of_o the_o public_a service_n special_o by_o the_o help_n of_o use_n and_o custom_n as_o experience_n show_v ergo_fw-la public_a prayer_n in_o latin_a may_v yield_v sufficient_a edification_n and_o so_o be_v lawful_a be_v incredible_a nor_o be_v our_o adversary_n able_a to_o prove_v it_o neither_o can_v they_o show_v by_o any_o record_n of_o antiquity_n that_o such_o a_o custom_n be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o the_o contrary_n may_v more_o than_o probable_o be_v show_v because_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o church_n in_o appoint_v liturgy_n or_o set_v form_n of_o public_a prayer_n at_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n be_v not_o for_o the_o word_n the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o indeed_o the_o end_n of_o public_a service_n be_v not_o to_o instruct_v people_n yet_o the_o prayer_n must_v be_v say_v in_o a_o language_n understand_v of_o all_o because_o they_o which_o come_v to_o god_n with_o sound_n of_o word_n without_o understanding_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n answer_n he_o that_o offer_v unto_o god_n vocal_a prayer_n full_a of_o devout_a &_o pious_a affection_n know_v only_o in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v pious_a devout_a &_o express_v such_o affection_n offer_v a_o grateful_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n though_o he_o do_v not_o distinct_o understand_v the_o word_n and_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n for_o example_n if_o one_o that_o understand_v not_o latin_n believe_v the_o psalm_n miserere_fw-la to_o be_v full_a of_o penitent_a affection_n and_o say_v the_o same_o with_o many_o tear_n of_o inward_a sorrow_n &_o contrition_n for_o his_o sin_n whosoever_o will_v say_v that_o this_o man_n offer_v unto_o god_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n be_v himself_o a_o infidel_n or_o foole._n for_o what_o great_a folly_n then_o to_o think_v that_o prayer_n of_o pious_a affection_n please_v not_o god_n except_o the_o affection_n correspond_v mathematical_o to_o the_o word_n people_n instruction_n but_o for_o other_o reason_n first_o that_o by_o this_o public_a service_n a_o continual_a daily_a tribute_n or_o homage_n of_o prayer_n &_o thanksgiving_n may_v be_v public_o offer_v and_o pay_v unto_o god_n second_o that_o christian_n by_o their_o personal_a assistance_n at_o this_o public_a service_n may_v protest_v &_o exercise_v exterior_o act_n of_o religion_n common_a with_o the_o whole_a church_n represent_v by_o the_o synaxis_n or_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n of_o every_o christian_a parish_n final_o to_o the_o end_n that_o every_o christian_n by_o his_o presence_n yield_v consent_n unto_o the_o public_a prayer_n praise_n and_o thankesgiving_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o it_o be_v subscribe_v &_o set_v his_o seal_n unto_o they_o by_o this_o assist_v at_o they_o may_v ordinary_o participate_v of_o the_o grace_n benefit_n &_o fruit_n which_o the_o church_n do_v obtain_v by_o her_o liturgye_n and_o public_a oblation_n now_o for_o this_o end_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v understand_v word_n by_o word_n the_o prayer_n that_o be_v say_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n but_o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a pastor_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n dedicate_v unto_o the_o ministerye_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o watch_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o soul_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n have_v particular_a notice_n of_o all_o the_o prayer_n that_o be_v say_v and_o that_o all_o who_o will_n may_v be_v teach_v &_o instruct_v in_o particular_a if_o they_o will_v use_v diligence_n &_o desire_v it_o moreover_o the_o church_n ancient_o even_o in_o the_o pure_a time_n of_o christianity_n have_v chancel_v unto_o which_o layman_n may_v not_o enter_v &_o so_o can_v not_o particular_o and_o distinct_o understand_v be_v understand_v it_o have_v be_v folly_n for_o the_o church_n intend_v her_o liturgy_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o lay-man_n to_o have_v exclude_v they_o out_o of_o the_o chancell_v and_o though_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o the_o priest_n read_v service_n in_o so_o audible_a a_o voice_n as_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v from_o the_o high_a of_o the_o chancel_n where_o the_o altar_n be_v place_v unto_o the_o body_n of_o church_n yet_o this_o he_o may_v better_o have_v speak_v unto_o fool_n then_o unto_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o know_v how_o great_a the_o chancell_v of_o many_o church_n be_v and_o how_o far_o distinct_o audible_a a_o man_n voice_n ordinary_o be_v the_o prayer_n say_v by_o the_o public_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n within_o the_o say_a chancell_v they_o do_v also_o use_v to_o say_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o liturgy_n 34._o liturgy_n vide_fw-la liturgias_fw-la impressas_fw-la anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1568._o basil._n in_o liturg_n fol._n 34._o secret_o so_o that_o their_o voice_n be_v not_o audible_a unto_o any_o yea_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v ancient_o use_v a_o veil_n pop._n veil_n basil._n ibidem_fw-la fol._n 34.38.41.43.46_o &_o chrysostom_n liturg._n fol._n 55._o &_o hom_n 61._o ad_fw-la pop._n wherewith_o the_o priest_n be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sacred_a oblation_n compass_v which_o be_v manifest_a sign_n that_o the_o church_n do_v never_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o all_o the_o public_a liturgy_n shall_v be_v hear_v much_o less_o word_n by_o word_n understand_v by_o the_o whole_a vulgar_a multitude_n present_v thereat_o beside_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o read_v in_o any_o language_n but_o greek_a over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n as_o s._n hierome_n paralip_n hierome_n hieron_n praefat_fw-la in_o paralip_n witness_v also_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n of_o saint_n basill_n be_v use_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o grecian_a be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o all_o the_o country_n of_o the_o east_n as_o be_v apparent_a by_o manifest_a testimony_n particular_o of_o the_o 19_o the_o basil._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la c._n 19_o cappadocian_o 11._o cappadocian_o hieron_n in_o prooem_n 2._o lib._n come_v ad_fw-la galat._n &_o act._n apost_n c._n 1._o v._n 10._o &_o 11._o mesopotamian_n 11._o mesopotamian_n hieron_n in_o prooem_n 2._o lib._n come_v ad_fw-la galat._n &_o act._n apost_n c._n 1._o v._n 10._o &_o 11._o galathian_o 13._o galathian_o theodoret._n in_o histor_n ss_z patrum_fw-la hist._n 13._o lycaonian_o anton._n lycaonian_o hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n eccles._n in_o anton._n egyptian_n syrian_n yea_o that_o all_o these_o country_n and_o most_o of_o the_o orient_a have_v their_o proper_a language_n distinct_a from_o the_o greek_a be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n no_o less_o manifest_a be_v it_o that_o the_o latin_a liturgy_n be_v common_a ancient_o for_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o western_a part_n even_o in_o africa_n as_o appear_v by_o testimony_n of_o s._n 173._o s._n august_n epist._n 57_o the_o doctrine_n christian._n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o august_n in_o psalm_n 123._o &_o in_o exposit_n ep._n ad_fw-la rom._n &_o epist_n 173._o augustine_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o latin_a be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n for_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o west_n and_o though_o the_o better_a sort_n understand_v it_o yet_o some_o of_o the_o word_n the_o although_o the_o father_n say_v that_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n &_o translation_n do_v serve_v all_o asia_n and_o the_o east_n although_o likewise_o they_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o the_o latin_a for_o all_o africa_n and_o the_o occident_n yet_o our_o minister_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a pa._n 379._o and_o 380._o that_o all_o people_n have_v their_o liturgye_n in_o their_o native_a tongue_n which_o he_o prove_v because_o the_o people_n do_v then_o praise_n god_n in_o all_o language_n and_o do_v pray_v according_a to_o s._n justine_n and_o tertullian_n together_o with_o the_o priest_n ergo_fw-la the_o public_a liturgy_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n in_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o his_o deny_v what_o
so_o many_o father_n affirm_v be_v impudent_a so_o his_o argue_v be_v frivolous_a as_o every_o man_n may_v see_v for_o catholic_n praise_v god_n in_o all_o language_n and_o meet_v to_o pray_v with_o priest_n as_o much_o as_o protestant_n &_o yet_o our_o public_a service_n be_v not_o say_v in_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n more_o impertinent_a be_v his_o allegation_n of_o father_n speak_v against_o distraction_n of_o mind_n &_o man_n not_o hear_v themselves_o in_o prayer_n as_o though_o man_n can_v not_o be_v recollect_v in_o prayer_n by_o attention_n unto_o god_n unto_o their_o own_o needs_o and_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o prayer_n though_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v they_o distinct_o word_n by_o word_n vulgar_a multitude_n only_o know_v their_o own_o mother_n tongue_n as_o may_v be_v clear_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o same_o saint_n augustin_n who_o write_v that_o he_o plead_v in_o latin_a against_o crispinus_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n for_o possession_n of_o a_o village_n in_o africa_n whereunto_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o villager_n be_v require_v they_o do_v not_o understand_v his_o speech_n till_o the_o same_o be_v interpret_v unto_o they_o in_o their_o vulgar_a african_a language_n so_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v never_o judge_v it_o requisite_a that_o the_o public_a liturgy_n shall_v be_v common_o turn_v into_o the_o mother_n language_n of_o every_o nation_n nor_o necessary_a that_o the_o same_o shall_v present_o be_v understand_v word_n by_o word_n by_o every_o one_o of_o the_o vulgar_a assistant_n neither_o do_v the_o end_n of_o the_o public_a service_n require_v it_o as_o for_o the_o comfort_n that_o some_o few_o want_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o perfect_o understand_v the_o particular_n of_o divine_a service_n it_o may_v by_o other_o mean_v abundant_o be_v supply_v without_o turn_v the_o public_a liturgye_n into_o innumerable_a vulgar_a language_n which_o will_v bring_v a_o great_a confusion_n into_o the_o christian_a church_n first_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o every_o country_n when_o difference_n arise_v about_o the_o translation_n thereof_o so_o diverse_a error_n &_o heresy_n may_v creep_v into_o particular_a country_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n never_o able_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o they_o second_o particular_a country_n can_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n true_o translate_v for_o thereof_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o assure_a proof_n but_o only_o the_o church_n approbation_n nor_o can_v she_o approve_v what_o she_o do_v not_o understand_v three_o be_v vulgar_a translation_n so_o many_o as_o there_o be_v language_n in_o the_o world_n it_o can_v not_o be_v otherways_o but_o some_o will_v be_v in_o many_o place_n ridiculous_a incongruous_a &_o full_a of_o mistake_v to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o soul_n special_o in_o language_n that_o have_v no_o great_a extent_n nor_o many_o learned_a man_n that_o natural_o speak_v they_o four_o the_o liturgy_n will_v be_v often_o change_v together_o with_o the_o language_n which_o do_v much_o altar_n in_o every_o age_n five_o in_o the_o same_o country_n by_o reason_n of_o different_a dialect_n some_o province_n understand_v not_o one_o another_o and_o in_o the_o island_n of_o japonia_n as_o some_o write_v there_o be_v one_o language_n for_o noble_a man_n another_o for_o rustics_n another_o for_o man_n another_o for_o woman_n into_o what_o language_n shall_v then_o the_o japonian_a liturgy_n be_v turn_v final_o by_o this_o vulgar_a use_n of_o the_o liturgy_n the_o study_n of_o the_o learned_a language_n will_v be_v give_v over_o &_o in_o short_a time_n come_v to_o be_v extinct_a as_o we_o see_v that_o no_o ancient_a language_n now_o remain_v in_o humane_a knowledge_n but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v incorporate_v in_o the_o liturgye_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o common_a use_n of_o learned_a tongue_n be_v extinct_a there_o will_v follow_v want_n of_o mean_n for_o christian_n to_o meet_v in_o general_n counsel_n to_o communicate_v one_o with_o another_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o word_n extreme_a barbarism_n will_v be_v bring_v upon_o the_o world_n private_a prayer_n not_o prayer_n the_o minister_n have_v nothing_o to_o say_v rayl_v &_o boast_v that_o the_o opposition_n of_o protestant_n forsooth_o have_v bring_v we_o to_o allow_v private_a vulgar_a prayer_n by_o force_n as_o we_o translate_v scripture_n &_o that_o be_v our_o kingdom_n as_o absolute_a as_o ever_o we_o will_v return_v to_o our_o centre_n thus_o he_o prophesi_v but_o so_o as_o he_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v a_o false_a prophet_n for_o to_o omit_v that_o diverse_a counsel_n many_o age_n before_o luther_n be_v bear_v command_v the_o know_v of_o the_o pater_n aue_fw-la and_o creed_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n where_o be_v the_o pope_n kingdom_n more_o absolute_a or_o protestancy_n less_o know_v then_o in_o italy_n and_o in_o spain_n and_o yet_o no_o where_n be_v prayer_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n more_o use_v then_o in_o italy_n and_o spain_n you_o shall_v hardly_o there_o find_v one_o woman_n one_o layman_n which_o say_v not_o their_o private_a devotion_n in_o the_o vulgar_a whereas_o thousand_o in_o germany_n low_a country_n polony_n england_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n love_v to_o say_v their_o prayer_n rather_o in_o latin_a to_o show_v their_o opposition_n against_o protestant_n that_o fond_o condemn_v such_o prayer_n &_o be_v so_o void_a of_o judgement_n as_o to_o think_v that_o pious_a thought_n and_o affection_n upon_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la please_v not_o god_n except_o we_o understand_v the_o word_n and_o measure_v our_o pious_a thought_n and_o affection_n geometrical_o unto_o the_o same_o so_o that_o a_o woman_n say_v with_o much_o devotion_n pater_fw-la noster_fw-la if_o perchance_o she_o think_v that_o pater_n signifyes_n our_o and_o noster_n father_n her_o prayer_n be_v mar_v wherefore_o your_o protestant_a imprudent_a opposition_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o many_o pray_v in_o latin_a which_o otherwise_o perchance_o will_v not_o for_o ignorant_a people_n in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n we_o practise_v we_o allow_v yea_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la and_o the_o creed_n be_v to_o be_v know_v of_o all_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n which_o two_o form_n contain_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o end_n of_o prayer_n be_v threefold_a to_o praise_n god_n for_o his_o infinite_a perfection_n to_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o his_o benefit_n bestow_v upon_o we_o to_o demand_v of_o he_o such_o necessarye_n as_o we_o want_v aswell_o for_o the_o maintain_n of_o this_o present_a as_o for_o the_o attain_v unto_o eternal_a life_n the_o creed_n be_v a_o sum_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n &_o his_o benefit_n towards_o man_n affoard_v sufficient_a knowledge_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o two_o former_a end_n of_o prayer_n the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la be_v a_o abridgement_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o need_v contain_v a_o full_a instruction_n for_o the_o three_o other_o prayer_n do_v but_o more_o plain_o express_v thing_n contain_v in_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la &_o the_o creed_n and_o our_o many_o book_n do_v show_v that_o these_o kind_n of_o prayer_n in_o vulgar_a language_n be_v by_o we_o write_v esteem_v practise_v we_o add_v that_o ordinary_o speak_v common_a people_n do_v more_o profit_n by_o say_v prayer_n in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n then_o in_o the_o latin_a because_o not_o only_o their_o affection_n be_v move_v to_o piety_n but_o also_o their_o understanding_n edifyed_a with_o knowledge_n notwithstanding_o some_o prayer_n though_o translate_v into_o english_a be_v so_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v as_o they_o will_v rather_o distract_v ignorant_a especial_o curious_a people_n then_o instruct_v they_o of_o which_o kind_n be_v many_o psalm_n of_o david_n &_o these_o prayer_n as_o we_o think_v may_v more_o profitable_o be_v say_v in_o latin_a so_o that_o i_o see_v no_o great_a difference_n either_o in_o practice_n or_o in_o doctrine_n between_o protestant_n &_o the_o roman_a church_n concering_n private_a prayer_n in_o a_o language_n unknown_a the_o five_o point_n repetition_n of_o pater_n noster_n ave_n and_o creed_n especial_o affix_v a_o kind_n of_o merit_n to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o your_o majesty_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o dislike_v repetition_n of_o prayer_n so_o the_o same_o be_v do_v with_o reverend_a devotion_n and_o affection_n for_o this_o repetition_n be_v iustify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n who_o still_o cry_v upon_o our_o saviour_n with_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o prayer_n 18._o prayer_n math._n 20._o marc._n 10._o luc._n 18._o jesu_fw-la fili_fw-la david_n miserere_fw-la mei_fw-la by_o which_o repetition_n he_o obtain_v his_o sight_n nor_o only_o of_o the_o princely_a prophet_n who_o in_o his_o 135._o psalm_n repeat_v 27._o
mysterijs_fw-la initiantur_fw-la cap._n â_o moses_n his_o word_n change_v the_o water_n of_o egypt_n into_o blood_n &_o again_o turn_v they_o from_o blood_n into_o water_n if_o so_o great_a be_v the_o benediction_n of_o man_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n work_v the_o word_n of_o elias_n have_v power_n to_o bring_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n &_o shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v force_n to_o change_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o element_n again_o 4._o again_o ambros._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la sâcram_fw-la cap._n 4._o thou_o see_v how_o work_n &_o efficacious_a be_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o therefore_o such_o virtue_n be_v in_o his_o word_n that_o thereby_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o receive_v be_v how_o much_o more_o have_v it_o power_n that_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v still_o remain_v in_o the_o general_a latitude_n of_o be_v &_o according_a to_o the_o sensible_a accident_n and_o be_v convert_v into_o another_o substance_n viii_o four_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o transmutation_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n bind_v we_o to_o abnegate_n our_o sense_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o seem_v to_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n ix_o theophilact_n matth._n theophilact_n theophilact_n c._n 4._o 26._o matth._n bread_n be_v transelemented_a or_o transform_v by_o a_o ineffable_a operation_n although_o to_o we_o it_o seem_v bread_n because_o we_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v horror_n to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n especial_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n for_o this_o reason_n bread_n appear_v but_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n saint_n cyrill_n 4._o cyrill_n cyrill_n hieros_n catech._n mystagog_o 4._o come_v not_o therefore_o as_o unto_o simple_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o affirmation_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o although_o sense_n suggest_v the_o contrary_a yet_o let_v faith_n confirm_v thou_o judge_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n by_o taste_n but_o indubitable_o &_o with_o full_a faith_n believe_v that_o thou_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o know_v this_o &_o with_o full_a certitude_n believe_v that_o the_o bread_n see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o so_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o wine_n see_v be_v not_o wine_n though_o taste_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v wine_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n x._o final_o that_o the_o father_n hold_v transubstantiation_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o continuancy_n which_o they_o teach_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n last_o as_o appeareth_z by_o their_o reserve_n of_o the_o same_o for_o reservation_n to_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n protestant_n grant_n that_o 39_o that_o habent_fw-la veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exemplum_fw-la fateor_fw-la caluin_n instit._fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 17._o sect_n 39_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o some_o reserve_v in_o the_o elder_a day_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o say_v 77._o say_v fulke_o against_o heskin_n saunders_n p._n 77._o m._n fulke_o so_o great_a a_o question_n as_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reserve_v and_o chemnitius_n 102._o chemnitius_n chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n con._n trid._n p._n 2._o p._n 102._o grant_v that_o in_o this_o point_n on_o our_o side_n stand_v antiquitas_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la latè_fw-la patentis_fw-la &_o diu_fw-la propagatae_fw-la and_o whereas_o he_o add_v haec_fw-la tamen_fw-la veritati_fw-la praescribere_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la he_o accuse_v the_o primitive_a church_n &_o oppose_v no_o less_o against_o they_o than_o us._n and_o i_o be_o sure_a your_o majesty_n know_v that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v use_v to_o send_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v lawful_o absent_a from_o church_n as_o do_v witness_n s._n justine_n fine_a justine_n justin._n apol._n 2._o fine_a &_o unto_o the_o sick_a as_o innocent_n as_o dionys._n alexand_v ep_v ad_fw-la fab._n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 6._o cap._n 36._o chrysost._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la innocent_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n write_v of_o serapion_n that_o christian_n carry_v the_o same_o to_o their_o private_a house_n to_o take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o other_o meat_n as_o testify_v tertullian_n gorgon_n tertullian_n tertul._n l._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la gregor_n nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr gorgon_n that_o many_o time_n they_o do_v wear_v the_o same_o about_o they_o for_o protection_n as_o satyri_fw-la as_o ambros._n orat_fw-la in_o obitââ_n fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la satyrus_n brother_n to_o saint_n ambrose_n go_v to_o sea_n carry_v it_o in_o a_o stole_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o be_v save_v in_o shipwreck_n that_o martyr_n have_v the_o same_o frequent_o for_o their_o viaticum_fw-la as_o 2._o as_o simeon_n metaphrast_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n stephani_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o martyris_fw-la cap._n 17._o vsuard_n in_o martyrolog_n guitmund_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sanguine_a l._n 2._o tharsilius_fw-la a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n who_o be_v take_v with_o the_o sacrament_n about_o he_o permit_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v bruise_v with_o stone_n to_o death_n then_o disclose_v it_o unto_o the_o persecutor_n who_o when_o they_o have_v crown_v thy_o search_a curious_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o clothes_n and_o about_o his_o dead_a body_n find_v nothing_o god_n by_o miracle_n keep_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o impious_a hand_n saint_n lapsis_fw-la saint_n cyprian_a serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la cyprian_n record_v diverse_a miracle_n do_v in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n permanent_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o a_o woman_n unworthy_o approach_v to_o the_o chest_n where_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v that_o be_v fright_v back_o with_o fire_n that_o thence_o flash_v out_o tanta_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la potentia_fw-la say_v saint_n cyprian_n tanta_fw-la majestas_fw-la and_o so_o full_o be_v they_o persuade_v in_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v permanent_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o cyrill_n calosyr_n cyrill_n cyrill_n alex._n ep_v ad_fw-la calosyr_n dare_v say_v insaniunt_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la à _fw-la sanctificatione_n cessare_fw-la siquae_fw-la reliquiae_fw-la remanserunt_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o sequentem_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la mutabitur_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la &_o vivificativa_fw-la gratia_fw-la iugis_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la est_fw-la they_o be_v mad_a with_o heretical_a folly_n who_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a sanctification_n of_o the_o sacrament_n cease_v if_o the_o same_o be_v reserve_v until_o the_o next_o day_n for_o thereby_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o change_v but_o the_o grace_n of_o benediction_n &_o vivification_n be_v perpetual_a in_o it_o now_o what_o reason_n can_v the_o father_n have_v thus_o constant_o to_o defend_v this_o continuation_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n remain_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o form_n &_o accidence_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v entire_a and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o accidence_n of_o some_o other_o substance_n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o the_o minister_n shift_n to_o elude_v the_o former_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o reference_n of_o the_o precedent_a number_n 1_n no_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a antiquity_n can_v be_v so_o clear_a &_o evident_a which_o heretical_a obstinacy_n will_v not_o wrest_v against_o the_o truth_n yea_o rack_n till_o they_o rend_v they_o in_o piece_n by_o violent_a interpretation_n as_o say_v s._n ambrose_n ep._n 17._o in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o minister_n reply_v unto_o these_o express_a &_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o confutation_n which_o here_o ensue_v ii_o transelement_a the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d transelementation_n say_v the_o minister_n pag._n 421._o prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o transubstantiation_n the_o matter_n be_v destroy_v &_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n remain_v &_o in_o transelementation_n the_o matter_n remain_v &_o the_o essential_a &_o accidental_a form_n be_v alter_v answer_n the_o falsehood_n and_o inanity_n of_o this_o shift_n be_v convince_v by_o these_o four_o argument_n which_o show_v transelementation_n to_o import_v the_o same_o as_o transubstantiation_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n element_n &_o transelementation_n for_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n signifyes_n that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n betwixt_o they_o according_a to_o their_o element_n element_n import_v the_o primordiall_a simples_n the_o original_a principle_n the_o substantial_a part_n of_o which_o
no_o sacrament_n can_v subsist_v term_v by_o divine_v materia_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la this_o substantial_a part_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v in_o one_o kind_n in_o which_o there_o be_v consecrate_v bread_n visible_a and_o sensible_a in_o the_o accident_n thereof_o and_o manducation_n a_o action_n also_o visible_a and_o apparent_a to_o sense_n the_o second_o thing_n require_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v verbum_fw-la the_o word_n that_o be_v a_o form_n of_o speech_n show_v the_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a purpose_n unto_o which_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v neither_o be_v that_o part_n want_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v under_o one_o kind_n which_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o the_o theological_a principle_n take_v out_o of_o saint_n augustin_n verify_v accedit_fw-la verbum_fw-la ad_fw-la elementum_fw-la &_o fit_a sacramentum_fw-la the_o three_o thing_n be_v signification_n every_o sacrament_n signify_v some_o divine_a effect_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n work_v by_o the_o application_n thereof_o and_o the_o sensible_a sign_n even_o by_o nature_n have_v as_o saint_n augustine_n epist._n 23._o note_v some_o proportion_n &_o analogy_n to_o signify_v that_o divine_a effect_n which_o to_o produce_v it_o be_v assume_v by_o god_n omnipotency_n as_o a_o instrument_n this_o sacred_a signification_n which_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n have_v be_v of_o three_o kind_n and_o all_o three_o be_v find_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v under_o one_o kind_n first_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o spiritual_a food_n for_o the_o nourishment_n and_o refection_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o signification_n be_v manifest_o find_v in_o communion_n under_o one_o demonstrate_v one_o the_o minister_n very_o often_o though_o out_o of_o place_n as_o pag._n 470._o li._n 20._o &_o pa._n 442._o object_n if_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n why_o shall_v communion_n in_o bread_n or_o wine_n be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n why_o may_v not_o communion_n in_o cheese_n be_v true_o a_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n answer_n first_o diverse_a protestant_n namely_o beza_n and_o caluin_n see_v beza_n epist_n 2._o &_o epist_n 25._o teach_v that_o though_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o in_o case_n that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v want_v one_o may_v use_v some_o other_o proportionable_a element_n as_o cheese_n and_o beer_n may_v you_o not_o employ_v your_o talon_n in_o rail_v upon_o these_o man_n better_a than_o on_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n second_o the_o protestant_n allow_v of_o cheese_n in_o lieu_n of_o bread_n and_o beer_n in_o lieu_n of_o wine_n be_v to_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n wherein_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n and_o consequent_o to_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o sacrament_n bring_v in_o a_o institution_n and_o sacrament_n of_o another_o substance_n but_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n without_o wine_n be_v not_o to_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n but_o only_o whereas_o the_o sacrament_n for_o more_o complete_a signification_n be_v institute_v in_o two_o elemtens_fw-la as_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o be_v institute_v after_o supper_n to_o use_v the_o one_o element_n without_o the_o other_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sufficient_a for_o all_o the_o function_n thereof_o be_v find_v in_o one_o kind_n as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v here_o demonstrate_v kind_n for_o the_o eucharist_n do_v signify_v this_o effect_n of_o spiritual_a nutrition_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o food_n of_o angel_n the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n but_o by_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n christ_n be_v signify_v as_o present_v according_a to_o his_o most_o sacred_a body_n and_o consequent_o as_o most_o sufficient_a to_o feed_v and_o refresh_v the_o soul_n another_o signification_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v union_n and_o conjunction_n between_o the_o faithful_a as_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v head_n &_o fellow-member_n one_o with_o another_o as_o s._n paul_n declare_v rom._n 12.4_o which_o conjunction_n the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n do_v signify_v for_o bread_n be_v a_o compound_n of_o many_o grain_n of_o wheat_n mass_v together_o in_o one_o loaf_n &_o also_o make_v of_o flower_n and_o water_n mingle_v one_o with_o another_o signifyes_n the_o perfect_a union_n both_o of_o the_o church_n with_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n one_o with_o another_o as_o saint_n paul_n 1_o cor._n 10._o testifyes_n unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la sumus_fw-la quotquot_fw-la de_fw-la uno_fw-la pane_fw-la participamus_fw-la where_o he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o wine_n the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v alone_o able_a to_o show_v &_o work_v this_o signification_n this_o sacrament_n do_v also_o signify_v the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v show_v and_o represent_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n sacrament_n kind_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 479._o that_o both_o kind_n do_v more_o lively_o represent_v christ_n passion_n than_o one_o only_a answer_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n substantial_o imperfect_a baptism_n by_o plunge_v the_o child_n into_o water_n represent_v christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n more_o lively_o they_o baptism_n by_o sprinkle_v yet_o be_v baptism_n by_o aspersion_n a_o full_a and_o entire_a sacrament_n for_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n only_o we_o have_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o remember_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o his_o passion_n shed_v and_o separate_v from_o his_o body_n likewise_o by_o participate_v of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n we_o may_v lively_o conceive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n by_o the_o effusion_n thereof_o on_o the_o cross_n whereupon_o christ_n as_o saint_n paul_n 14.15_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 11._o v._n 14.15_o testifyes_n do_v after_o the_o consecration_n of_o each_o kind_n particular_o recommend_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n as_o know_v that_o in_o each_o of_o they_o alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a monument_n and_o memorial_n thereof_o the_o four_o thing_n require_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v causality_n to_o wit_n to_o work_v in_o the_o soul_n the_o spiritual_a effect_n it_o signifyes_n this_o causality_n can_v be_v want_v to_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n wherein_o be_v contain_v the_o fountain_n of_o spiritual_a life_n for_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n give_v grace_n and_o refresh_v the_o soul_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v assistant_n unto_o they_o bind_v by_o his_o promise_n at_o the_o presence_n of_o sensible_a sign_n to_o work_v proportionable_o spiritual_a effect_n in_o dispose_v soul_n but_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o he_o be_v able_a through_o infinite_a power_n and_o bind_v by_o inviolable_a promise_n to_o work_v the_o effect_n of_o grace_n preserve_v unto_o life_n eternal_a the_o worthy_a participant_a of_o this_o sacrament_n only_o sacrament_n hence_o be_v refute_v what_o the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 478_o without_o any_o proof_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o make_v to_o one_o kind_n only_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la vivit_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la joan._n 6.55_o not_o any_o doubt_n than_o may_v be_v make_v but_o the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v full_a entire_a complete_a in_o substance_n &_o by_o participation_n thereof_o prepare_v conscience_n do_v receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o celestial_a favour_n that_o conserve_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o daily_a increase_n in_o perfection_n kind_n perfection_n the_o minister_n very_o often_o object_v as_o pag._n 479._o &_o 502._o and_o elsewhere_o that_o according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o some_o schoolman_n great_a benefit_n of_o grace_n it_o reap_v by_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n answer_n first_o catholic_a divine_v of_o great_a number_n &_o learning_n hold_v the_o contrary_n second_o this_o be_v impertinent_a for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v of_o great_a perfection_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n three_o if_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n give_v more_o grace_n yet_o this_o excess_n may_v be_v easy_o equal_v by_o other_o diligence_n as_o by_o often_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n and_o by_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n the_o minister_n 472._o prove_v communion_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o be_v of_o great_a profit_n because_o it_o be_v
especial_o unto_o 79._o unto_o basil._n epist_n ad_fw-la caesar._n patritium_fw-la pratum_fw-la spiritual_n c._n 79._o eremite_n to_o be_v carry_v in_o most_o pure_a linen_n corporal_n home_n to_o their_o house_n to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o all_o other_o meat_n but_o there_o be_v no_o sign_n or_o token_n in_o antiquity_n that_o the_o faithful_a together_o with_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n do_v carry_v away_o with_o they_o consecrate_a wine_n yea_o diverse_a history_n show_v the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n kind_n bread_n minister_n pag._n 504._o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n to_o send_v the_o communion_n to_o person_n absent_a in_o both_o kind_n as_o appear_v by_o exuperius_n in_o s._n hierome_n tom._n 1._o epist._n 4._o and_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n of_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n answer_n exuperius_n no_o layman_n but_o bishop_n of_o tholosa_n have_v sell_v the_o silver_n ciboriums_n &_o chalice_n of_o his_o church_n to_o maintain_v the_o poor_a be_v force_v through_o poverty_n to_o keep_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o a_o basket_n of_o osier_n &_o in_o a_o glasse-cup_n so_o carry_v they_o about_o when_o he_o do_v administer_v the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o people_n but_o that_o he_o carry_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o glass_n out_o of_o the_o church_n about_o he_o s._n hierome_n do_v not_o say_v yea_o he_o signify_v that_o this_o use_n of_o osier-basket_n &_o glasse-cup_n be_v in_o the_o church_n say_v nihil_fw-la ditius_fw-la exuperio_fw-la nostro_fw-la qui_fw-la corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la canistro_fw-la vimineo_fw-la &_o sanguinen_n portat_fw-la in_o vitro_fw-la qui_fw-la avaritiam_fw-la eiecit_fw-la etemplo_fw-la nothing_o be_v more_o rich_a than_o exuperius_n who_o do_v carry_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o a_o osier-basket_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o a_o glass_n who_o have_v cast_v covetousness_n out_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o he_o carry_v the_o blood_n about_o he_o in_o a_o glass_n when_o he_o go_v any_o journey_n expose_v the_o same_o to_o manifest_a danger_n of_o be_v irreverent_o spill_v special_o glass_n be_v so_o brittle_a and_o easy_o break_v and_o the_o ancient_n exceed_v solicitous_a and_o anxious_a that_o the_o blood_n may_v not_o be_v shed_v nor_o any_o particle_n of_o the_o sacred_a bread_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n say_v of_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n pray_v earnest_o for_o the_o recovery_n of_o her_o health_n that_o whatsoever_o of_o the_o antitype_n or_o image_n of_o the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n her_o hand_n have_v hide_v that_o she_o do_v bath_n &_o mingle_v with_o her_o tear_n which_o place_n vasquez_n who_o you_o so_o commend_v as_o learned_a and_o intelligent_a do_v show_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o holy_a image_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n not_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n for_o woman_n be_v never_o permit_v to_o touch_v the_o sacred_a chalice_n with_o their_o hand_n nor_o to_o keep_v consecrate_v cup_n in_o their_o house_n for_o the_o blood_n but_o only_o white_a linen_n corporal_n for_o the_o body_n it_o have_v be_v also_o against_o the_o reverence_n ancient_a christian_a devotion_n do_v bear_v to_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o she_o to_o have_v pour_v her_o tear_n into_o the_o sacred_a chalice_n mingle_v they_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sign_n in_o antiquity_n that_o layman_n do_v keep_v in_o their_o private_a house_n or_o do_v carry_v about_o they_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n therefore_o in_o their_o private_a house_n and_o out_o of_o the_o church_n they_o still_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v carry_v away_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o then_o esteem_v of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n as_o of_o a_o sacrilegious_a maym_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o protestant_n now_o do_v three_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n in_o the_o grecian_a 52._o grecian_a council_n loadicen_n can_v 49._o &_o trullen_n can_v 52._o church_n to_o consecrate_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n on_o saturdaye_n and_o sunday_n &_o on_o the_o other_o day_n of_o the_o week_n to_o communicate_v ex_fw-la praesanctificatis_fw-la of_o the_o presanctify_v form_n that_o be_v consecrate_v on_o the_o saturday_n or_o sunday_n before_o now_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o they_o do_v consecrate_v wine_n to_o endure_v five_o or_o six_o day_n long_o for_o fear_v special_o in_o such_o hot_a country_n the_o same_o shall_v grow_v sour_a wherefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o do_v communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n four_o the_o quadrag_n the_o leo._n serm_n 4._o the_o quadrag_n manichee_n live_v in_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n shroud_a themselves_o among_o catholic_n go_v to_o their_o church_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n public_o with_o they_o under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o note_v nor_o thereby_o discern_v from_o catholic_n a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v public_o in_o the_o church_n permit_v at_o the_o least_o upon_o some_o just_a cause_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v for_o how_o can_v the_o manichee_n still_o refuse_v the_o cup_n have_v be_v hide_v among_o these_o ancient_a christian_n if_o they_o have_v be_v persuade_v as_o now_o protestant_n be_v that_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o sacrilege_n if_o one_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v refuse_v the_o cup_n but_o once_o in_o a_o public_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n will_v he_o not_o be_v incontinent_o note_v church_n note_v the_o minister_n pag._n 560._o first_o the_o manichee_n be_v espy_v else_o how_o can_v the_o pope_n reprove_v their_o practice_n second_o vasquez_n the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o these_o heretic_n receive_v the_o cup_n into_o their_o hand_n but_o drink_v no_o wine_n and_o among_o a_o great_a multitude_n some_o few_o may_v hold_v the_o cup_n to_o their_o mouth_n &_o make_v show_n of_o drink_v and_o yet_o receive_v no_o wine_n answer_n the_o pope_n do_v reprove_v that_o practice_n of_o the_o manichee_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v their_o heresy_n so_o to_o do_v in_o that_o they_o hold_v wine_n to_o be_v the_o gall_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o shed_v his_o blood_n on_o the_o cross_n which_o also_o to_o be_v their_o practice_n such_o as_o be_v convert_v from_o that_o heresy_n do_v witness_v vasquez_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o manichee_n do_v only_o put_v the_o cup_n to_o their_o mouth_n without_o drink_v and_o so_o lie_v hide_v and_o unknown_a for_o he_o be_v not_o so_o simple_a but_o he_o do_v see_v this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o the_o deacon_n that_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o communicants_a one_o by_o one_o will_v present_o have_v perceave_v it_o he_o say_v that_o they_o do_v drink_v of_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n but_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o their_o mouth_n till_o they_o come_v to_o some_o place_n where_o without_o be_v note_v they_o may_v spit_v be_v out_o which_o i_o can_v not_o think_v to_o be_v probable_a first_o the_o manichee_n hold_v wine_n to_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o impure_a and_o detestable_a as_o the_o devil_n gall_n how_o will_v they_o take_v the_o same_o into_o their_o mouth_n second_o how_o can_v they_o keep_v the_o wine_n in_o their_o mouth_n so_o long_o but_o that_o some_o part_n thereof_o will_v go_v down_o three_o s._n leo_n bid_v catholic_n to_o note_v the_o man_n that_o omnino_fw-la altogether_o refrain_v from_o the_o cup_n signify_v that_o they_o may_v by_o this_o their_o perpetual_a abstinence_n be_v distinguish_v from_o catholic_n that_o sometime_o refrain_v but_o if_o they_o take_v still_o the_o wine_n into_o their_o mouth_n keep_v the_o same_o there_o till_o they_o come_v to_o a_o solitary_a place_n where_o they_o may_v spit_v it_o out_o secure_o how_o can_v they_o be_v discern_v by_o their_o abstayn_v from_o the_o cup_n more_o than_o any_o other_o catholic_n do_v use_v to_o do_v hence_o even_o vasquez_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o dissimulation_n of_o heretic_n namely_o of_o the_o macedonian_a woman_n relate_v by_o sozom._n l._n 8._o c._n 5._o be_v probabile_fw-la &_o valde_fw-la apparens_fw-la probable_a and_o very_a apparent_a to_o prove_v that_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v arbitrary_a and_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o last_o argument_n be_v practice_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v of_o the_o first_o christian_n under_o they_o of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2.42_o apostle_n act._n 2.42_o erant_fw-la perseverantes_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o communicatione_n fractionis_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o orationibus_fw-la speak_v of_o sacred_a eucharistical_a bread_n the_o take_v whereof_o be_v join_v with_o prayer_n which_o unto_o the_o new_o baptize_v be_v
man_n offend_v he_o comparative_o with_o he_o infinite_o base_a wherefore_o mortal_a sin_n which_o be_v a_o abandon_v of_o god_n for_o some_o transitory_a content_n be_v injury_n do_v unto_o god_n incomparable_o grievous_a on_o the_o other_o side_n satisfaction_n be_v the_o less_o esteem_v by_o how_o much_o the_o person_n satisfy_v be_v mean_a and_o the_o person_n offend_v great_a man_n and_o angel_n what_o be_v they_o be_v compare_v with_o god_n certain_o nothing_o therefore_o certain_o their_o work_n &_o satisfaction_n be_v inestimable_o disproportionable_a to_o satisfy_v for_o any_o the_o least_o mortal_a sin_n the_o guilt_n whereof_o be_v so_o great_a a_o debt_n as_o it_o be_v unsatisfiable_a but_o only_o by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v a_o person_n coequal_a &_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n to_o satisfy_v god_n anger_n by_o humble_v the_o infinite_a dignity_n of_o his_o person_n unto_o the_o most_o disgraceful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n offer_a satisfaction_n full_a and_o complete_a yea_o superabundant_a the_o person_n satisfy_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o divinity_n be_v infinite_o more_o honourable_a than_o the_o person_n offend_v be_v contemptible_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o baseness_n three_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v that_o those_o that_o have_v be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o baptism_n if_o they_o sin_v mortal_o afterward_o when_o they_o repent_v god_n forgive_v they_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o consequent_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n bountiful_o &_o gracious_o through_o the_o mere_a merit_n of_o christ_n without_o their_o satisfaction_n only_o they_o must_v by_o faith_n by_o fear_n by_o hope_n by_o contrition_n by_o purpose_n of_o amendment_n prepare_v &_o make_v themselves_o capable_a of_o that_o gracious_a and_o grace-infusing_a pardon_n four_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v that_o god_n by_o pennance_n forgive_a the_o eternal_a punishment_n do_v in_o lieu_n thereof_o many_o time_n appoint_v a_o task_n of_o temporal_a pain_n to_o be_v endure_v by_o the_o penitent_a this_o reserve_v penalty_n be_v great_a or_o lesser_a according_a to_o the_o multitude_n and_o grievousnes_n of_o the_o sin_n commit_v and_o be_v that_o for_o which_o penitent_n may_v and_o must_v satisfy_v and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o penal_a work_n perform_v by_o the_o child_n of_o god_n beautify_v by_o so_o many_o aforenamed_a excellent_a grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o deserve_v of_o god_n the_o remission_n of_o this_o temporal_a mulct_n and_o cancel_v the_o debt_n of_o endure_v transitory_a pain_n i_o can_v bring_v testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n in_o great_a number_n for_o the_o necessity_n we_o have_v of_o suffer_v these_o voluntary_a affliction_n for_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o efficacity_n thereof_o to_o expiate_v sin_n with_o the_o very_a name_n of_o satisfaction_n term_n satisfaction_n the_o minister_n will_v fain_o elude_v this_o consent_n of_o father_n by_o diverse_a shift_n but_o two_o be_v the_o chief_a which_o i_o will_v here_o full_o refute_v pag._n 544._o he_o say_v the_o romist_n in_o their_o course_n of_o doctrine_n about_o satisfaction_n pervert_v all_o that_o which_o the_o father_n teach_v first_o that_o which_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o fault_n and_o guilt_n of_o sin_n they_o wrest_v to_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n remain_v after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o everlasting_a guilt_n answer_n you_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ministerial_a wont_a proud_a &_o bold_a in_o your_o accusation_n but_o poor_a and_o miserable_a in_o your_o proof_n you_o say_v the_o father_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n but_o of_o the_o very_a guilt_n thereof_o and_o in_o another_o place_n pag._n 547._o yet_o more_o bold_o what_o soever_o be_v speak_v in_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n concern_v redeem_v sin_n by_o satisfaction_n belong_v to_o the_o fault_n and_o eternal_a pain_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o satisfaction_n must_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o delinquent_n himself_o in_o this_o present_a life_n this_o you_o say_v but_o prove_v it_o not_o yea_o the_o contrary_n be_v clear_a truth_n and_o prove_v by_o these_o 4._o or_o 5._o argument_n first_o if_o after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o everlasting_a guilt_n there_o remain_v a_o temporal_a pain_n to_o be_v mitigate_v and_o take_v away_o by_o penitential_a work_n than_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v but_o the_o father_n speak_v something_o thereof_o but_o yourself_o p._n 540._o lin_v ult._n say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o remaynder_n of_o temporal_a affliction_n after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o pag_n 541._o lin_v 7._o that_o this_o temporal_a pain_n may_v be_v remove_v or_o mitigate_v by_o work_n of_o mortification_n and_o penance_n therefore_o you_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v the_o father_n never_o speak_v thereof_o second_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o that_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n which_o david_n make_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o adultery_n and_o murder_n of_o urias_n yea_o they_o make_v this_o satisfaction_n of_o david_n the_o prototype_n and_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n they_o require_v hilarius_n in_o psal._n 118._o &_o alij_fw-la but_o david_n his_o satisfaction_n by_o patient_a endure_a penalty_n inflict_v be_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n and_o not_o for_o the_o stain_n and_o eternal_a guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v remit_v long_o before_o present_o upon_o his_o inward_a contrition_n and_o repentance_n dominus_fw-la à _fw-la te_fw-la transtulit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la tuum_fw-la 2._o reg._n 12.13_o therefore_o the_o satisfaction_n which_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n require_v be_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n not_o for_o the_o guilt_n of_o mortal_a sin_n three_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o after_o inward_a grief_n and_o contrition_n for_o sin_n by_o which_o they_o know_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n ezechiel_n 18.22_o long_o continue_v satisfaction_n must_v be_v do_v to_o pacify_v god_n wrath_n cyprian_n epist._n 40._o dominus_fw-la long_fw-mi &_o continua_fw-la satisfactione_n placandus_fw-la est_fw-la but_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v man_n need_v not_o nor_o can_v satisfy_v but_o for_o the_o temporal_a four_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o man_n must_v seek_v to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n even_o after_o they_o be_v just_a and_o god_n adopt_a child_n hierom._n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la but_o in_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a guilt_n be_v remit_v and_o nothing_o can_v remain_v to_o be_v remove_v by_o satisfaction_n but_o the_o guilt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n final_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o after_o this_o life_n often_o there_o remain_v something_o of_o sin_n to_o be_v expiate_v by_o purgatory_n pain_n from_o which_o soul_n may_v be_v release_v and_o relieve_v by_o the_o pious_a work_n of_o their_o live_a friend_n so_o say_v s._n augustine_n express_o l._n 21._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 24._o serm_n 32._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostol_n and_o many_o other_o i_o omit_v other_o demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n to_o what_o you_o so_o much_o object_n that_o father_n say_v man_n must_v redeem_v their_o sin_n and_o satisfy_v for_o their_o offence_n to_o god_n i_o answer_v by_o sin_n they_o mean_v the_o pain_n due_a unto_o sin_n which_o be_v term_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o sin_n hence_o sin_n be_v say_v after_o the_o remission_n thereof_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o soul_n to_o wit_n in_o his_o effect_n nor_o can_v the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o be_v full_o cleanse_v until_o this_o debt_n be_v satisfy_v minister_n pag._n 544._o second_o that_o which_o the_o father_n style_v satisfaction_n improper_o and_o by_o way_n of_o deprecation_n the_o romist_n make_v satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n yea_o of_o rigour_n of_o justice._n nazarius_n in_o 3_o p._n d._n thom._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o controu_fw-fr 7._o pag._n 113._o and_o for_o venial_a sin_n more_o effectual_a than_o christ_n satisfaction_n suarez_n tom._n 4._o in_o 3._o p._n disp_n 48._o sect_n 3._o answer_n your_o slander_v humour_n be_v intolerable_a nazarius_n say_v &_o prove_v that_o our_o satisfaction_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n he_o add_v if_o our_o satisfaction_n be_v join_v with_o christ_n dicetur_fw-la eam_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-la rigore_fw-la iustitiâ_n ratione_fw-la satisfactionis_fw-la christi_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n in_o respect_n not_o of_o itself_o but_o of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ._n hence_o you_o charge_v he_o with_o this_o proposition_n man_n may_v make_v satisfaction_n to_o god_n in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n very_o you_o may_v as_o well_o accuse_v s._n paul_n of_o make_v himself_o omnipotent_a absolute_o and_o without_o any_o
any_o doctrine_n prejudicial_a unto_o prince_n be_v singular_a unto_o jesuit_n that_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o jesuit_n and_o by_o jesuit_n only_o why_o do_v you_o not_o name_v these_o opinion_n what_o they_o be_v why_o do_v you_o dwell_v upon_o generalyty_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o cozen_a companion_n dolosus_fw-la versatur_fw-la in_o generalibus_fw-la why_o but_o because_o you_o know_v that_o descend_v unto_o particular_n your_o falsehood_n will_v present_o be_v display_v hence_o you_o talk_v in_o the_o air_n and_o in_o effect_n thus_o you_o discourse_n i_o know_v there_o be_v certain_a opinion_n maintain_v singular_o by_o jesuit_n against_o royal_a sovereignty_n what_o they_o be_v i_o do_v not_o know_v for_o they_o be_v write_v in_o book_n as_o invisible_a as_o be_v our_o church_n before_o luther_n no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v read_v but_o by_o the_o light_n thereof_o the_o opinion_n for_o which_o some_o catholic_n at_o who_o you_o glance_v as_o appear_v by_o your_o margin_n have_v tax_v jesuit_n of_o singularity_n be_v that_o god_n have_v assure_v prescience_n of_o thing_n contingent_a not_o only_o of_o which_o shall_v in_o time_n actual_o happen_v but_o also_o of_o what_o upon_o supposition_n which_o never_o be_v may_v have_v be_v for_o example_n god_n know_v certain_o whether_o these_o conditional_a proposition_n be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v never_o see_v anne_n bullen_n england_n have_v be_v catholic_a at_o this_o day_n if_o queen_n mary_n of_o scotland_n have_v flee_v into_o france_n when_o she_o come_v into_o england_n she_o have_v recover_v her_o kingdom_n against_o the_o rebel_n if_o the_o miracle_n christ_n do_v in_o jewry_n have_v be_v do_v in_o tyrus_n and_o sidon_n those_o city_n will_v have_v do_v penance_n this_o doctrine_n some_o divines_n mislike_v and_o say_v the_o same_o be_v first_o invent_v by_o jesuit_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o have_v protestant_n do_v jesuit_n wrong_n that_o relate_v this_o very_a doctrine_n of_o god_n conditional_a prescience_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o reform_a gospel_n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 3._o c._n 23._o pag._n 122._o but_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o be_v this_o to_o your_o scope_n the_o doctrine_n that_o god_n know_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n conditional_o contingent_a what_o make_v it_o against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o prince_n do_v you_o not_o see_v you_o be_v ridiculous_a second_o if_o jesuit_n be_v not_o singular_a in_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o depression_n of_o king_n wherefore_o be_v jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n contra_fw-la sectam_fw-la anglicanam_fw-la condemn_v at_o paris_n in_o france_n and_o burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n answer_n i_o likewise_o demand_v of_o you_o if_o jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o princely_a authority_n why_o be_v the_o same_o allow_v in_o all_o other_o catholic_a kingdom_n so_o as_o the_o king_n by_o his_o solicitation_n can_v not_o get_v the_o same_o to_o be_v condemn_v do_v not_o other_o kingdom_n know_v the_o catholic_a extent_n of_o royal_a authority_n zealous_o mantain_v the_o sovereignty_n thereof_o how_o can_v that_o doctrine_n be_v singular_a of_o jesuit_n unto_o which_o bishop_n secular_a doctor_n and_o religious_a of_o other_o order_n have_v set_v their_o name_n by_o way_n of_o approbation_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o treatise_n and_o if_o your_o argument_n be_v good_a jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n be_v in_o france_n burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n ergo_fw-la the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v doctrine_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o prince_n sure_o this_o argument_n be_v strong_a and_o unanswerable_a minister_n paraeus_n his_o book_n be_v in_o london_n public_o burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n by_o order_n of_o the_o king_n wherein_o no_o papist_n have_v his_o hand_n ergo_fw-la the_o protestant_a ministry_n hold_v doctrine_n pernicious_a unto_o the_o state_n of_o prince_n the_o three_o argument_n wherefore_o be_v jesuit_n banish_v out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o venetian_n profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o no_o singularity_n about_o the_o matter_n of_o regal_a and_o civil_a authority_n answer_n why_o be_v jesuit_n permit_v desire_v and_o seek_v for_o by_o all_o other_o catholic_n kingdom_n and_o state_n of_o the_o world_n if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o singularity_n against_o regal_a and_o civil_a authority_n shall_v one_o dispute_v in_o this_o sort_n wherefore_o be_v chrysostome_n socrat._v l._n 6._o c._n 26._o &_o alij_fw-la banish_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a city_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n arcadius_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o catholic_a empress_n in_o a_o council_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n but_o that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o treason_n against_o royal_a authority_n what_o will_v a_o learned_a answerer_n say_v he_o will_v laugh_v at_o the_o disputant_n folly_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o king_n and_o state_n may_v be_v put_v into_o displeasure_n and_o passion_n against_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n &_o so_o banish_v they_o their_o dominion_n not_o only_o for_o singularity_n against_o civil_a authority_n but_o for_o other_o reason_n as_o for_o their_o over_o zealous_a inveigh_v against_o vicious_a life_n &_o constant_a cross_n of_o their_o disordinate_a humour_n i_o can_v bring_v many_o example_n of_o just_a &_o holy_a man_n banish_v by_o catholic_n yea_o by_o pious_a and_o godly_a king_n and_o state_n upon_o mistake_n suspicion_n false_a information_n s._n athanasius_n that_o mirror_n of_o sanctity_n &_o learning_n unto_o who_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v more_o behold_v then_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o then_o live_v beside_o be_v he_o not_o for_o suspicion_n about_o temporal_a affair_n banish_v by_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o pattern_n of_o religious_a prince_n ruffin_n l._n 1._o c._n 17._o god_n permit_v such_o trial_n to_o fall_v on_o his_o servant_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o patience_n until_o time_n discover_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v sufficient_o clear_v if_o man_n still_o remain_v obdurate_a his_o justice_n will_v not_o sleep_v the_o four_o argument_n mariana_n the_o jesuit_n work_n the_o institutione_n principis_fw-la wherein_o he_o maintain_v regicide_n be_v extant_a in_o many_o hand_n answer_n the_o example_n of_o mariana_n prove_v not_o that_o jesuit_n hold_v singular_a opinion_n against_o other_o but_o only_o that_o mariana_n be_v singular_a against_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o order_n which_o through_o the_o oversight_n of_o revisor_n pass_v to_o the_o print_n a_o thing_n that_o may_v sometime_o happen_v which_o to_o prevent_v the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuit_n give_v that_o severe_a order_n about_o review_v of_o book_n in_o that_o kind_n which_o the_o jesuit_n have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o answer_n that_o jesuit_n mariana_n be_v singular_a against_o the_o rest_n appear_v in_o that_o he_o be_v confute_v by_o name_n of_o some_o of_o his_o own_o order_n for_o this_o doctrine_n even_o before_o the_o censure_n of_o paris_n see_v the_o letter_n of_o cotton_n and_o if_o you_o will_v allow_v against_o the_o common_a proverb_n one_o swallow_n make_v not_o a_o summer_n that_o the_o error_n of_o one_o be_v sufficient_a be_v condemn_v a_o whole_a society_n than_o the_o minister_n paraeus_n his_o work_n wherein_o he_o mantayne_v deposition_n and_o regicide_n must_v make_v all_o minister_n guilty_a special_o see_v not_o one_o of_o they_o write_v against_o paraeus_n his_o book_n before_o the_o same_o be_v public_o burn_v in_o london_n nor_o be_v mariana_n his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o you_o often_o ignorant_o suppose_v but_o of_o the_o commonwealth_n power_n against_o tyrant_n a_o doctrine_n which_o jesuit_n condemn_v but_o protestant_n common_o follow_v i_o can_v name_v twenty_o of_o their_o author_n that_o peremptory_o affirm_v what_o mariana_n do_v only_o doubt_o propose_v yea_o much_o more_o for_o do_v not_o protestant_n teach_v see_v the_o book_n of_o dangerous_a position_n lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o l._n 2._o c._n 1._o that_o judge_n ought_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o summon_v prince_n before_o they_o for_o their_o crime_n and_o to_o proceed_v against_o they_o as_o against_o all_o other_o offender_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v wicked_a king_n and_o tyrant_n that_o god_n to_o the_o people_n have_v give_v the_o sword_n from_o which_o no_o person_n king_n queen_n emperor_n be_v exempt_a be_v a_o idolater_n he_o must_v die_v the_o death_n a_o hundred_o the_o like_a theorem_n of_o your_o gospel_n and_o gospeler_n can_v i_o allege_v to_o stop_v your_o mouth_n the_o opinion_n which_o mariana_n do_v doubtful_o insinuate_v be_v far_o short_a of_o